Tor
Books by Glen Cook
An III
Fate Marshalling
Reap
the East Wind
The
Swordbearer
The
Tower of Fear
THE
BLACK COMPANY
The
Black Company (The First Chronicle)
Shadows
Linger (The Second Chronicle)
The
White Rose (The Third Chronicle)
The
Silver Spike
Shadow
Games (The First Book of the South)
Dreams
of Steel (The Second Book of the South)
Bleak
Seasons (Book One of Glittering Stone)
Sixth
Chronicle of the Black Company
BLEAK
SEASONS
Glen
Cook
BOOK
ONE
GLITTERING
STONE
A TOM
DOHERTY ASSOCIATES BOOK / NEW YORK
This is a work of fiction. All the
characters and events portrayed in this novel are either fictitious or are used
fictitiously.
BLEAK SEASONS
Copyright (c) 1996 by Glen Cook
All rights reserved, including the right to
reproduce this book, or portions thereof, in any form.
This book is printed on acid-free paper.
A Tor Book
Published
by Tom Doherty Associates, Inc.
175
Fifth Avenue
New
York, NY 10010
Tor
Books on the World Wide Web: http://www.tor.com
Tor(r)
is a registered trademark of Tom Doherty Associates, Inc.
Library
of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data
Cook,
Glen.
Bleak
seasons / Glen Cook. - 1st ed.
p.
cm.-(Chronicle of the Black Company ; 6th) (Book of glittering stone ; 1st)
"A
Tom Doherty Associates book." ISBN 0-312-86105-2 (alk. paper) I. Title.
II. Series: Cook, Glen. Chronicle of the Black Company ; 6th. III. Series:
Cook, Glen. Book of glittering stone ; 1st. PS3553.05536B58 1996 813'.54-dc20 95-30051
C1P
First
Edition: April 1996
Printed
in the United States of America
0987654321
For
Trish and Kim, precious friends of a decade and more.
BLEAK
SEASONS
Incessant
wind sweeps the plain. It mutters across grey pavements that sweep from horizon
to horizon. It sings around scattered black pillars, a chorus of ghosts. It
tumbles leaves and scatters dust come from afar. It teases the hair of a corpse
that has lain undisturbed for a generation, mummifying. Impishly, the gale
tosses a leaf into the cadaver's silently screaming mouth, tugs it away again.
The wind carries the breath of winter.
Lightning
leaps from pillar to ebon pillar like a child skittering from base to base in a
game of tag. For a moment there is color on that spectral plain.
The
pillars might be mistaken for relics of a fallen city. They are not. They are
too few and too randomly placed. Nor has a one ever fallen, though many have
been gnawed deeply by the teeth of the hungry wind.
1
..
fragments . . .
...
just blackened fragments, crumbling between my fingers.
Browned
page corners that reveal half a dozen words in a crabbed hand, their context no
longer known.
All
that remains of two volumes of the Annals. A thousand hours of labor. Four
years of history. Gone forever.
Or are
they?
I do
not want to go back. I do not want to relive the horror. I do not want to
reclaim the pain. There is pain too deep to withstand right here, right now.
There is no way to recapture the totality of that awfulness, anyway. The mind
and heart, safely over to the farther shore, simply refuse to encompass the
enormity of the voyage.
And
there is no time. There is a war on.
Always
there is a war on.
Uncle
Doj wants something. Just as well to stop now. Teardrops make the ink run.
He is
going to make me drink some strange philtre.
Fragments
. . .
... all
around, fragments of my work, my life, my love and my pain, scattered in this
bleak season. . . .
And in
the darkness, shards of time.
2
Hey,
there! Welcome to the city of the dead. Don't mind those guys staring. Ghosts
don't see a lot of strangers at least of a friendly persuasion. You're right.
They do look hungry. That happens during these siege things.
Try not
to look too much like a lamb roast.
Think
that's a joke? Stay away from the Nar.
Welcome
to Dejagore, what the Taglians call this deathtrap. The teeny brown
Shadowlanders the Black Company grabbed it from call it Stormgard. People who
actually live here always called it Jaicur even when that was a crime. And who
knows what the Nyueng Bao call it. And who cares, eh? They aren't talking and
they aren't part of the equation anyway.
That's
one of them. That rascal there, no meat on him and a skull face. Everybody
around here is some shade of brown but theirs is different. It has a grey cast
to it. Almost deathly. You won't mistake a Nyueng Bao for anything else.
Their
eyes are like polished coal no fire will ever warm.
That
noise?
Sounds
like Mogaba, the Nar and the First Legion rooting out Shadowlanders again. Some
get inside almost every night. They are like field mice. You just can't get rid
of them all.
Found
some the other day that had been in hiding since the Company took the city.
How
about that smell out there? It was worse before the Shadowlanders started
burying the bodies. Maybe a shovel was a little too complicated a machine.
Those
long mounds that radiate from the city like spokes have corpses stacked like
cordwood inside. Sometimes they didn't pile the dirt on deep enough and the
gasses of corruption burst the mounds open. That's when you hope the wind is
blowing their way.
You see
how positively they are thinking, all the not-yet-filled-trenches they are
digging. A lot of the dirt goes into the ramps.
The
elephants are the worst. They take forever to rot. They tried burning them
once, but all that did was irritate the buzzards. So where they could they just
dragged the bodies over and incorporated them into their ramps.
Who?
The ugly little guy with the uglier hat? That is One-Eye. You must have been
warned about him.
How
come One-Eye? On account of the eye patch. Clever, huh?
The
other runt is Goblin. You should have been warned about him, too. No? Well,
stay out of their way. All the time is best, but especially if they are arguing,
and most particularly if they have been drinking. As wizards go they are no
earthshakers but they are more than you will be able to handle.
Puny as
they are, they are the main reason the Shadowlanders have stayed out there in
the country roughing it, leaving the wallowable luxuries of the city to the
Taglian troops and Black Company.
No, now
pay attention. Goblin is the white one. All right, you're right, he is overdue
for his annual bath. Goblin is the one who looks like a toad. One-Eye is the
one with the hat and the patch.
The
guys in the once-upon-a-time-they-were-white tunics are Taglian soldiers. Every
day now every one of them asks himself what damned fool notion made him enroll
in the legions.
The
folks wearing the colored sheets and unhappy expressions are locals. Jaicuri.
Fancy
this. When the Company and the legions swooped down from the north and
surprised Stormshadow they hailed the newcomers as liberators. They strew the
streets with rose petals and favorite daughters.
Now the
only reason they don't stab their liberators in the back is that the
alternative is worse. Now they are alive enough to starve and be abused.
Shadowspinner
is not famous for kindness and kissing babies.
The
kids all over? Those almost happy and fat urchins? Nyueng Bao. All Nyueng Bao.
The
Jaicuri nearly stopped making babies after the Shadowmasters came. Most of the
few that were born failed to survive the hard times since. The handful still
breathing are protected more fiercely than any treasure. You won't find them
running naked through the streets, squealing and totally ignoring strangers.
Who are
the Nyueng Bao? You never heard of them?
It is a
good question. And a hard one to answer.
The
Nyueng Bao don't talk to outsiders except through their Speaker but the word is
that they are religious pilgrims who were on the homeward leg of a
once-in-a-generation hadj who got trapped by circumstance. The Taglian soldiers
say they hail from vast river delta swamps west of Taglios. They are a
primitive, minuscule minority abhorred by the majority Gunni, Vehdna, and
Shadar religions.
The
whole Nyueng Bao people makes the pilgrimage. And the whole people got caught
right in the deep shit here in Dejagore.
They
need to work on their timing. Or they should sharpen their skills at appeasing
their gods.
The
Black Company cut a deal with the Nyueng Bao. Goblin and their Speaker gobbled
for half an hour and it was settled. The Nyueng Bao would ignore the Black
Company and Taglians for whom the Company is responsible. The Nyueng Bao would
be ignored in turn.
It
works. Mostly.
Their
men are a sort you don't want to upset. They don't take shit from anybody.
They
never start anything except, according to the Taglians, by being too damned stubborn
to do what they are told.
Sounds
like One-Eye style reasoning at work there.
Just
kick those crows. They're getting too goddamn bold! Think they own the
place.... Hey! You got one. Grab it! They aren't good eating but they are a
sight better than no eating at all.
Shit.
Got away. Hell, that happens. Head for the citadel. You get your best look at
the layout from up there.
Those
guys? They are Company. Never guess, huh? White guys down here? The one with
the wild hair is Big Bucket. He turned into a pretty fair sergeant. He is just
crazy enough. With him are Otto and Hagop. They have been around longer than
anybody but Goblin and One-Eye. Those two have been Old Crew for generations.
One-Eye ought to be sneaking up on two hundred.
That
bunch is Company, too. Shirking work. The antique lunger is Wheezer. Not much
good for anything. How he got through the big brawl no one knows. They say he
busted heads with the best of them.
The
other two black guys are the Geek and the Freak. No telling why. Nothing wrong
with them. Look like a couple of rubbed ebony statues, don't they?
You
think these names just come out of a hat? They earn them the hard way. Usually
they come out from under One-Eye's hat, really. Yeah, they probably have real
names. But they have been called by nicknames so long even they have trouble
remembering.
Goblin
and One-Eye are the main ones not to forget. And to remember not to put behind
you. They do not deal well with temptation.
This is
Glimmers Like Dewdrops Street. Nobody knows why. A real mouthful, right? You
ought to hear it in Jaicuri. A jawbreaker. This is the route the Company took
coming in to snatch the tower. Maybe they will rename it Runs With Blood
Street.
Yeah,
the Company charged through here in the heart of the night, killing anything
that moved, and jammed in there before they had any idea what was happening.
With Shape-shifter's help they roared on up the tower where they let him help
finish off Stormshadow before they tagged him.
It was
an old Company grudge. They owed Shifter from another generation, when Shifter,
helping Soulcatcher break the city's resistance, murdered One-Eye's brother
Tom-Tom when the Company was in service to the Syndic of Beryl. Croaker,
One-Eye and Goblin, Otto and Hagop are the only guys left from those days.
Hell, Croaker is gone now. Isn't he? History-worshipping slob is buried out
there in one of those mounds. Fertilizing the plain. Mogaba is the Old Man now.
Sort of, in his own mind.
Those
who form it come and go but the Company is forever. Every brother, great or
small, is a snack just not yet snapped up by the devouring maw of time.
Those
big black monster men watching the gate are the Nar. They are descendants of
the Black Company of centuries ago. Scary beasts, aren't they? Mogaba and a
whole herd of his pals joined the Company quest at Gea-Xle. The Old Crew have
had no pleasure of them.
You mix
the whole crowd up and squeeze them dry, you could not come up with two ounces
of sense of humor.
There used
to be a lot more of them than there are now but they keep getting themselves
killed. They are bone crazy, the whole lot. For them the Company is a religion.
Only their Company is not the Black Company of the Old Crew. That becomes more
apparent almost by the hour.
All Nar
stand more than six feet tall. All Nar run like the wind and leap like
gazelles. Mogaba chose only the most athletic and warriorly to join the quest
for Khatovar. All the Nar are quick as cats and strong as gorillas. All the Nar
use their weapons like they were born with them in their hands.
The
rest? The ones who call themselves the Old Crew? Yeah. It is true. The Company
is more than a job. If it was just a job, just selling swords to whoever would
pay, the Black Company would not be in this part of the world. There was work a
plenty in the north. The world never lacks for potentates who want to bully
their subjects or neighbors.
The
Company is family for those who belong. The Company is home. The Company is a
nation of outcasts, alone and defying the whole world.
Now the
Company is trying to complete its cycle of life. It is on a quest in search of
its birthplace, fabled Khatovar. But all the world seems determined that
Khatovar shall be unattainable, a virgin forever hidden behind a veil of
shadow.
The
Company is home, sure, but Croaker was the only one who ever went completely
misty-eyed over that damned angle.
For him
the Black Company was a mystery cult though he never went as far as Mogaba and
made it a holy calling.
Watch
your step. They still don't have all the mess cleaned out from the last attack.
If you couldn't tell by the smell. The Jaicuri don't help much anymore. Maybe
it is lack of civic pride.
The
Nyueng Bao? They are just here. They stay out of the way. They have this notion
that they can stay neutral. They will learn. Shadowspinner is going to teach
them. Nobody stays neutral in this world. The best you can do is choose your
spot to jump in.
Little
out of shape? You will come around. A few weeks running hither and yon,
blunting Shadowspinner's probes and hustling out on Mogaba's spoiling raids,
will get you as sharp as a Nyueng Bao sword.
You
thought sieges were all just laying around relaxing and waiting the other guy
out?
Man,
this other guy is a foamy mouth lunatic.
And not
just nuts. He is a sorcerer. A major player, though he hasn't shown much here.
Before the Old Man got himself offed in the big slugfest that trapped everyone
here he hurt Spinner real bad. The old devil just hasn't been himself since.
Poor baby.
This is
it. Top of the tower. And there is the whole stinking burg, laid out like it is
on one of those sand tables Lady always liked.
Oh,
yeah. Those rumors have made it here, too. They started with some Shadowlander
prisoners. Maybe that was Kina up north. Or something. But it could not have
been Lady. She died right out there. Fifty guys saw her taken down. Half of
them got killed trying to rescue her.
How can
you say that? You can't be sure? How many eyewitnesses does it take? She is
dead. The Old Man is dead. They're all dead, them what did not get inside
before Mogaba sealed the gates.
The
whole mob is dead. All but the crowd in here. And they are caught between
lunatics. It's a tossup who is crazier, Mogaba or Shadowspinner.
You see
it all? That is it. Dejagore enduring the siege of the Shadowmasters. Not real
impressive, is it? But every one of those burned areas memorializes a ferocious
hand to hand, house to house negotiation with the Shadowlanders.
Fires
start easily in Dejagore.
Hell is
supposed to be hot, isn't it?
4
. . .
who I am, on the improbably remote chance that my scribblings do survive. I am
Murgen, Standardbearer of the Black Company, though I bear the shame of having
lost the standard in battle. I am keeping unofficial Annals because Croaker is
dead, One-Eye won't, and hardly anyone else can read or write. I was the heir
Croaker trained. I will do it even without official sanction.
I will
be your guide for a few months or weeks or days, however long it takes the
Shadowlanders to force our present predicament to its inevitable end.
Nobody
inside these walls is going to get out of this. There are too many of them and
too few of us. Our sole advantage is that our commander is as mad as theirs.
That makes us unpredictable. Don't add much hope, though.
Mogaba
will not give up as long as he personally is capable of hanging onto something
with one hand while he throws rocks with the other.
I
expect my writings to blow away on a dark wind, never to be touched by another
eye. Or they might become the tinder Shadowspinner uses to light the pyre under
the last man he murders after taking Dejagore.
If
anyone does find this, brother, we begin. This is the Book of Murgen, last of
the Annals of the Black Company. The long tale winds down.
I will
die lost and frightened in a world so alien I cannot understand a tenth of it
when I focus all my soul. It is so old.
Times
lies heavily here. Two thousand-year-old traditions underpin incredible
absurdities taken completely for granted. Dozens of races and cultures and
religions exist in a mix that should be volatile but has persisted so long that
conflicts are just reflexive twitches in an ancient body mostly too tired to
bother anymore.
Taglios
is only one large principality. There are scores more, mostly now in the
Shadowlands, all pretty similar.
The
major peoples are the Gunni, the Shadar, and the Vehdna, names which which
define religion, race and culture all at once. The Gunni are the most numerous
and widespread. Gunni temples, to a bewilderingly broad pantheon, are so
numerous you're seldom out of sight of one.
Physically,
Gunni are small and dark but not black like the Nar. Gunni men wear toga-like
robes, weather permitting. Their bright mix of colors declare caste, cult, and
professional alliances. Women, too, dress brightly, but in several layers of
wraparound cloth. They veil their faces if unmarried, though marriages are made
early. They wear their dowries as jewelry. Before they go out they illustrate
their foreheads with the caste/cult/professional markings of both their
husbands and their fathers. I will never decipher those hieroglyphs.
Shadar
are paler, like heavily tanned whites from the north. They are big, usually
over six feet. They do not shave or pluck their beard, unlike the Gunni. Some
sects never cut their hair. Bathing is not forbidden but it is a vice seldom
indulged. Shadar all dress in grey and wear turbans to define their status.
They eat meat. Gunni do not. I have never seen a Shadar woman. Maybe they find
their babies under cabbage leaves.
The
Vehdna are the least numerous of the major Taglian ethnic groups. They are as
light as the Shadar but smaller, more lightly built, with ferocious features.
They share none of the Shadar's spartan values. Their religion forbids almost
everything, rules honored in the breach quite often. They like a little color
in their costume, though not bright like the Gunni. They wear pantaloons and
real shoes. Even the poorest conceal their bodies and wear something atop their
heads. Low-caste Gunni wear nothing but loincloths. Married Vehdna women wear
only black. You can see nothing but their eyes. Unmarried Vehdna women you
don't see at all.
Only
the Vehdna believe in an afterlife. And that only for men except for a few
female warrior saints and daughters of prophets who had balls big enough to be
honorary men.
Nyueng
Bao, rarely seen, usually wear loose-fitting long-sleeve pullover shirts and
baggy lightweight pants, generally black, men and women alike. Children go
naked.
Any
city down here is glorious chaos.
It is
always a holy day for somebody.
5
From
the citadel tower it is obvious that Dejagore is a complete contrivance. Of
course, most walled cities are shaped by the probability that, part of the
time, neighboring states will be managed by thugs. Your own city's masters will
never be worse than benevolent despots, of course, and their worst ambition
will be to heighten the hometown glory.
Until
the appearance of the Shadowmasters one short generation ago war was an alien
concept throughout this part of the world. It had seen neither armies nor
soldiers in all the centuries since the Black Company's departure.
Into
this improbable paradise came the Shadowmasters, lords of darkness from the far
reaches of the earth who brought with them all the wolves of the old nightmare.
Soon inept armies were about. They stalked unprepared kingdoms like great cruel
behemoths even the gods could not stay. The dark tide spread. Cities crumbled.
A lucky few the Shadowmasters chose to rebuild. The peoples of the
newly-founded Shadowlands were given their options: obedience or death.
Jaicur
was reborn as Stormgard, seat of the Shadowmaster Stormshadow, she who could
bring the winds and thunder howling and bellowing in the darkness. She who had
borne the name Stormbringer in another age and place.
First
Stormshadow raised a mound forty feet high on top of the ruins of captured
Jaicur, at the heart of a plain she had flattened absolutely by slaves and
prisoners of war. Earth for the mound came from the ring of hills completely
surrounding the plain. With the mound complete and faced on its outer sides
with several layers of imported stone, Stormshadow built her new city up top.
And that she surrounded with walls another forty feet high. She did not
overlook the latest theories about towers for enfilading fire and barbicans to
protect her elevated gates.
All the
Shadowmasters seemed driven by a paranoid need to make themselves safe in their
home places.
Never
once in her planning, though, did she take into account the possibility that
she might have to resist the onslaught of the Black Company.
I wish
we were half as wicked as I talk.
Dejagore
has four gates. Each stands at one point of the compass rose. Each is at the
end of a paved highway running straight in from the hills. Only the road from
the south carries any traffic these days.
Mogaba
has sealed three gates, leaving only sally ports which are guarded by his Nar
at all times. Mogaba is determined to fight. He is just as determined that not
one of our raggedy-ass Taglian legionnaires will run off and not go down with
him.
None of
us, be we Black Company Old Crew, Nar, Jaicuri, Taglian, Nyueng Bao, or someone
else who had the bad luck to get caught here, is going to get out alive. Not
unless Shadowspinner and his gang get so bored they go looking for someone else
to bully. Right. You've got the eight and ten of swords and to go down you're
going to bet your ass on pulling the nine.
Your
chances of pulling that nine are better than ours of getting out of here.
The
fortified encampment of the Shadowlanders stands south of the city. It is so
close we can reach it with our heavy artillery. You can see charred timbers
where we tried to burn them out the day of the big battle. We have raided them
a few times since then, too, but no longer have the strength to risk.
We
can't seem to discourage Shadowspinner, though.
Like
most warlords he doesn't let reality get in the way of his doing whatever he
wants to do.
The
artillery gives them a wake-up five nights out of five, pick a random time.
That keeps them cranky and tired and a lot less effective whenever they attack.
Trouble is, so much effort keeps us tired and cranky, too. And we have other
projects going as well.
Shadowspinner
is a puzzle. He is not the first of his kind in Company experience. The
heavyweight killers in our past, though, when faced with a situation like this,
would have stomped on Dejagore like jumping on an anthill before looking for a
real challenge. But here lightweights Goblin and One-Eye can slide around
quickly and treacherously enough to parry Spinner's every feeble thrust.
His
weakness is a mystery.
Makes
you nervous when an enemy doesn't do everything you think he can. And a
Shadowspinner doesn't become a top badass being gentle.
One-Eye
sees everything in its wickedest light. He says Spinner is slacking because
Longshadow has a hold on him and is weakening him deliberately. Your basic old
time power politics with the Company in the middle.
Before
we came along the Shadowmasters did find their biggest challenges in fighting
one another.
On
principle Goblin seldom agrees with One-Eye about anything. He claims
Shadowspinner is lulling us while he recovers from wounds that were more
serious than we suspected.
My
guess is, six of one, half a dozen of the other.
Crows
circle the Shadowlander camp. Always they circle. Some come, some go, but a
baker's dozen minimum are there all the time. Others haunt us day and night.
Wherever I go, whenever, a crow is nearby. Except inside. They don't get
inside. We don't let them inside. Those that try end up in somebody's pot.
Croaker
had a thing about crows. I think I understand it now. But the bats bother me
more.
We
don't see the bats as often. The crows get most of them. (These crows are not
ashamed to come out at night.) And those that the crows don't get we do, most
of the time. Inevitably, though, a few get away. And that isn't good.
They
spy for the Shadowmasters. They are the farranging eyes of wickedness out here
where our enemies cannot always manipulate the living darkness.
Only
two Shadowmasters remain. Spinner has problems. They do not have the reach or
control they showed back when they could and did run the shadows into the very
heart of the Taglian Territories.
They
are fading from the stage.
One
dreams.
Dreams
too easily become nightmares.
6
When
you look down from the citadel you have to wonder how the Jaicuri manage, all
jammed inside Dejagore's walls. Truth is, they don't and never did.
At one
time the hills surrounding the plain were covered with farms and orchards and
vineyards. After the shadow came enterprises gradually disappeared as the
peasant families abandoned the land. And then the antishadow, the Black
Company, came, ever so hungry after the long sprint south from the victory at
Ghoja Ford. And then came the Shadowlander armies which battered us.
Now the
hills bear little but memories of what once was. Vultures never picked bones
much cleaner than those hills have been gleaned.
The
wisest peasants were those who fled early. Their children will repopulate the
land.
Later
the stupid ones ran here, inside the false safety of Dejagore's walls. When
Mogaba is particularly cranky he drives a few hundred out the gate. They are
just mouths crying to be filled. Food must be husbanded for those willing to
die defending the walls.
Locals
who fail to contribute, or who demonstrate a weakness for getting sick or
seriously injured, go out the gate right behind the peasants.
Shadowspinner
won't take any in but those willing to help raise his earthworks and dig his
burial trenches. The former means laboring under falls of missiles directed by
old friends inside, while the latter means making the bed where you will He as
soon as you are useful no longer.
Hard
choices.
Mogaba
cannot fathom why his military genius isn't universally hailed.
He doesn't
mess with the Nyueng Bao. Not yet. They haven't contributed much to Dejagore's
defense but they don't sap resources, either. Their babies are getting fat
while the rest of us tighten our belts.
You
don't see many dogs or cats now. Horses manage only because they are militarily
protected, and then only a handful of them. We're going to eat hearty when the
last fodder is gone.
Small
game like rats and pigeons are becoming scarce. Sometimes you hear the outraged
protest of a crow taken by surprise.
The
Nyueng Bao are survivors.
They
are a race possessed of a single impassive face.
Mogaba
does not bother them mainly because when anybody does the whole bunch gets
pissed off. And they consider fighting a really serious, holy business.
They
stay out of the way when they can but they aren't pacifists. A couple of times
the Shadowlanders have regretted trying to push through their part of town.
The
Nyueng Bao generated an amazing amount of carnage both times.
Rumor
among the Jaicuri says they eat their enemies.
It is
true, human bones showing evidence of butchery and cookery have been found.
Jaicuri are mainly of the Gunni religion. Gunni are vegetarians.
I do
not believe the Nyueng Bao are responsible, but Ky Dam refuses to deny even the
blackest allegation against his people.
Maybe
he will accept any canard that makes the Nyueng Bao seem more dangerous. Maybe
he wants that kind of talk so fear will build.
Survivors
grasp the tools at hand.
I wish
they would talk. I'd bet they could tell stories that would curl your toes and
straighten your hair.
Ah!
Dejagore! Those halcyon days, slouching through hell with a smile on.
How
long before all the fun goes out of the town?
7
Bone
tired, just as I had been every night for as long as I could remember, I went
to take my turn on the wall. I had no ambition at all and even less energy.
Seated in a crenel, I heaped aspersions on the ancestors of all my bitty
Shadowlander buddies. I am afraid I lacked creativity but I made up for that
with virulence. They were up to something out there. You could hear rattlings
and mutterings and see torches moving around.
There
were all the harbingers of a night without sleep. Couldn't these people be
normal and handle their business during regular hours?
It
didn't sound like they were more enthusiastic than me. I caught the occasional
sharp remark about me or my foredaddies, like this mess was all my fault. I
guess they were motivated mainly by their sure knowledge that they would never
go home if they didn't recapture Stormgard.
Maybe
nobody on either side would get out of this one alive.
A crow
called, mocking us all. I didn't bother throwing a rock at it.
It was
misty out. A half-hearted drizzle came and went. Lightning stalked beyond the
hills to the south. It had been hot and humid all day, then had turned
viciously stormy toward evening. Lakes of water stood in the streets.
Stormshadow's engineers had not made good drainage a high priority, despite the
natural advantages available.
It
would not be a good night for attacking tall walls. And not much easier for
anyone defending them.
Still,
I almost felt sorry for the little buggers down below.
Candles
and Red Rudy finished the long climb from the street, groaning. Each carried a
heavy leather sack. Candles grumbled, "I'm too old for this shit."
"If
it works out we'll all get to get old."
Both
men leaned on merlons while they caught their wind. Then they dumped their
sacks into the darkness. Somebody down there swore in a Shadowlander dialect.
"Serves you right, asshole," Rudy growled back. "Go home. Let me
sleep."
All of
the Old Crew invested time hauling dirt.
"I
know," Candles told me. "I know. But what good is alive if you're too
damned tired to give a shit?"
If you
read the Annals you know our brothers have said the same thing since the
beginning. I shrugged. I could come up with nothing inspirational. Mostly you
don't try to justify or motivate, you just go on.
Candles
grumbled, "Goblin wants you. We'll cover you here."
In
battered Shadowlander Rudy shouted downward, "Yeah, I know your turkey
gobble. Fuck you."
I
grunted. It was my watch but I could leave if I wanted. Mogaba didn't even
pretend to try to control the Old Crew anymore. We did our part. We held our
ground. We just would not conform to his ideas of what the Black Company ought
to be.
But
there was going to be one hell of a showdown if the Shadowmaster and his circus
ever hit the road.
"Where
is he?"
"Down
Three." That he signed in finger speech. We use deaf speech frequently if
we talk business out in the open. Bats and crows can't read it. Neither can any
of Mogaba's faction.
I
grunted again. "Be back."
"Sure."
I
descended the steep, slippery stair, muscles aching, anticipating the weight of
the sack I would be carrying when I came back.
What
could Goblin want? Probably a decision on something trivial. That runt and his
monocular sidekick religiously avoid taking on any responsibility.
I run
the Old Crew, most of the time, because nobody else wants to bother.
We have
established ourselves in an area of tall brick tenements close to the wall,
southwest of the north gate, which is the only gate still fully functional.
From the first hour of the siege we have been improving our position.
Mogaba thinks in terms of attack. He does
not believe a war can be won from behind stone walls. He wants to meet the
Shadowlanders on the wall, to throw them back, then to charge outside and stomp
them. He launches spoiling raids and nuisance attacks to keep them wobbly. He
won't prepare for the possibility that they might get inside the city in
significant numbers, although almost every attack puts Shadowlanders on our
side of the wall before we can concentrate enough to push them back.
Someday,
sometime, things won't go Mogaba's way. Someday Shadowspinner's people are
going to grab a gate. Someday we are going to see full scale city war.
That is
inevitable.
The Old
Crew is ready, Mogaba. Are you?
We will
become invisible, Your Arrogance. We have played this game before. We read the
Annals. We will be the ghosts who kill.
We
hope.
Shadows
are the question. Shadows are the problem. What do they know? What will they be
able to find?
Those
villains have not been called Shadowmasters just because they love the
darkness.
8
With
the exceptions of three hidden doors, all entrances to the Company's quarters
have been bricked up. Likewise every window opening below third floor levels.
Alleys and breezeways are now a maze of deathtraps. The three usable entrances
can be reached only by climbing outside stairways subject to missile fire their
entire rise. Where we could manage we have fireproofed.
For the
Black Company there is no inactivity during the days of siege. Even One-Eye
works. When I can find him.
Every
man stays too damned busy and too damned tired to dwell upon our situation.
After
entering a concealed entrance known only to the brothers of the Old Crew, the
crows and bats, the shadows, the Nyueng Bao watchers down the street and any
Nar who care to keep track from the north barbican, I trundled down flight
after flight of steps. I reached a basement where Big Bucket dozed beside a
lonely, fitful little candle. Quiet though I was, he cracked an eyelid. He
wasted no breath on a challenge. A ramshackle, twisted wardrobe tilted against
the wall behind him, its door hanging crookedly on one damaged hinge. I pulled
the door gently and eased inside.
Any
outsider force reaching the cellar would find the wardrobe stuffed with
desperately meager food stores.
The
cabinet fronts a tunnel. Tunnels join all our buildings. Mogaba and anyone else
interested might expect as much. If they got down into our cellars a little
work would show them what they hoped to find.
That
ought to satisfy them.
The
tunnel entered another cellar. Several men were asleep there, amidst tremendous
clutter and a smell like a bear's den. I moved slowly until recognized.
Had I
been an intruder I would not have been the first never to return from the
underworld.
Now I
entered the real secret places.
New
Stormgard rose atop old Jaicur. Little effort was made to demolish the old
town. Many of the earlier structures had been in excellent condition.
We have
a bewildering maze dug out down where no one ought to think to look. It gets a
tad bigger whenever a sack of earth goes to the wall or into one of our other
projects. It is no cozy warren, though. It takes willpower to go down into
those dank, dark places where the air hardly moves, candles never come wholly
to life, and there is at least a chance that any shadow may harbor a screaming
death.
And me,
I have a thing about being buried alive.
It gets
no easier with practice.
Hagop
and Otto, Goblin and One-Eye and I went through this before, on the Plain of
Fear, where for about five thousand years we lived like badgers in the ground.
"Cletus.
Where's Goblin?" Cletus is one of three brothers who serve as our
engineers and master artillerymen.
"Around
the corner. Next cellar."
Cletus,
Loftus and Longinus are geniuses. They figured out how to bring fresh air down
the chimneys of existing structures up top, then into the deep tunnels, let it
flow slowly through the complex, then send it up other chimneys. Plain
engineering, but it seemed like sorcery to me. A flow of breathable air, though
slow and never pure, serves us well enough.
It does
nothing to lessen the damp and the smell.
I found
Goblin. He was holding a candle for Longinus while the latter slapped wet
mortar onto freshly scrubbed stonework about eye level. "What's the
problem, Goblin?"
"Rained
like a bastard up there, eh?"
"Gods
swiped a river somewhere and dropped it here. Why?"
"We've
got a thousand leaks down here."
"Big
problem?"
"Could
be later on. There's no drainage. We're as low as we can go unless the Twelve
tunnel goes good."
"Sounds
like an engineering problem to me."
"It
is," Longinus said, smoothing the mortar. "And Clete did anticipate
it. We've waterproofed from the start. Trouble is, you can't tell how you're
doing until you get a really nasty rain. We're lucky it didn't go on the way it
does during the rainy season. Three days of that, we might've gotten flooded
out."
Still
sounds like an engineering problem. You can handle it, right?"
Longinus
shrugged. "We'll work on it. That's all we can do, Croaker."
Little
dig there. Like telling me, let everybody do their own worrying.
"That's
why you wanted me?" It seemed a little weak, even for Goblin.
"No.
Longo, you don't hear anything." The toad-faced man made a complex gesture
with three fingers of his left hand as he said that. Some half-hinted glimmer
trailed behind his fingers momentarily. Longinus went back to work like he was
deaf.
"It
so important you need to cut him out?"
"He
talks. He don't mean no harm but he can't help repeating everything he
hears."
"And
makes it better when he tells it. I know. All right. Tell me."
"Something
has happened with the Shadowmaster. He's changed. Me and One-Eye only decided
for sure about an hour ago but we think it's been going on for a while. He's
just kept us from seeing it."
"What?"
Goblin
leaned closer, as though Longinus might yet eavesdrop. "He's gotten well,
Murgen. He's just about back to normal. He's been getting his feet under him
before he comes down on us with them both at once. We also decided that he is
hiding the change more from his buddy Longshadow than he is from us. We don't
scare him that much."
I
stiffened, recalling strange behavior on the encircling plain, going on right
now. "Oh, shit!"
"What?"
"He's
going to come tonight. Real soon. They were moving into position when I came
down. I thought it was just the usual. . . . We'd better go full alert." I
headed out of there with what energy I had, announcing the alert wherever I saw
anybody.
9
Shadowspinner
did not hurry. The Company took its positions on the wall. The Taglian rabble
we led got as ready as they ever get. I sent warning to Mogaba and Speaker Ky
Dam. Mogaba is a jerk and a lunatic but not a complete fool. He believes he
keeps the job separate from personalities. If Goblin claimed we were in big
trouble he would listen.
Alarms
sounded everywhere. Shouts of anger at being anticipated rose outside the wall.
The
civilian population began to respond. Fear swept the darkened streets. This
felt bigger than usual. As always, the old-timers among the Jaicuri recalled
the first coming of the Shadowmasters. Back then the enemy first wave consisted
of deadly flickers of darkness.
"One-Eye.
Any shadows out there?"
"Won't
be any of those, Murgen. They have to come up from Shadowcatch. Longshadow
would have to be in on it."
"Good."
I've seen what the shadows can do, on a small scale. The Jaicuri were right to
be scared.
"I
promise you some sorcery, though. It's already gathering."
"I
love how you can always cheer me up, runt." I surveyed the walls beyond
our section. Hard to see much but it looked like any assault would meet a ready
defense.
Which
meant nothing if Spinner was in good form.
"Murgen!"
"What?"
"Behind
you."
I
looked.
Ky Dam,
Speaker of the Nyueng Bao, accompanied by a son and some grandsons, by gesture
asked if he could come up to the battlements. Only the son was armed. He was a
squat, emotionless man rumored to be some kind of master swordsman. I nodded.
"Welcome aboard."
The
Speaker looked like he was about a thousand years older than One-Eye but was
spry enough to climb without help. He didn't have a lot of himself to move
around. His hair was evenly distributed around his head and face but very
little of it remained. It consisted of white wisps. He was covered with liver
spots. His skin color had faded. He was more pallid than some of us northerners.
He
bowed slightly.
I
responded in kind, trying to match his bow exactly. That would indicate an
honor between equals, which ought to earn me some good guy points because,
although junior in years, I was senior here because he was on Company ground
and I was Company top dog.
Clever
me, I make every effort to be polite to the Speaker. And I keep reminding the
guys to be respectful and protective of all Nyueng Bao, even if provoked. I am
trying to encourage the taking of a longer view than is usual with ordinary
people.
We have
no friends anywhere in these strange lands.
Ky Dam
faced the darkened plain. His presence was strong. Many Jaicuri believe he is a
sorcerer. Goblin and One-Eye say he can be called a wizard in the word's most archaic
sense, of wise man.
The old
boy drew a breath that seemed to enhance his aura of strength. "It will be
different tonight." He spoke mainstream Taglian with no accent.
"Their
master has recovered his powers."
The
Speaker glanced at me sharply, then at Goblin and One-Eye. "Ah. So."
"Exactly."
I've always wanted to do that when some old fart made cryptic noises. I
couldn't help myself when the perfect opportunity arrived.
I
eyeballed the Speaker's escort. The swordmaster seemed too squat and bulky for
his reputation. Such as it was. Not a lot crosses the cultural boundary.
The
grandsons looked like most Nyueng Bao men in their prime. Like if they smiled,
or showed any emotion whatsoever, they would forfeit their souls. Like they had
cactus plugs up their butts, in Goblin's words.
I went
on with my work while Ky Dam considered the night. His escort stayed out of my
way.
Big
Bucket checked in. "All set, boss."
And the
Shadowmaster's men sounded like they were ready to play. Their horns began
calling like bulls in rut. I grumbled, "It won't be long." They could
put it off for another twenty years, though. I wouldn't mind. I was in no
hurry.
A
Taglian messenger stumbled up from the street, fought for breath, croaked out
word that Mogaba wanted me.
"On
my way. Less than five minutes," I told him. I scanned the darkness.
"Hold the fort, Bucket."
"Just
what this outfit needs. Another comedian."
"Oh,
I'll slay them."
Ky Dam
said something. The swordmaster squinted at the night. For half a heartbeat
there was a ghostly flicker in the hills. Star? Reflection of a star? No. The
night was cool, wet and overcast.
The
Speaker said, "There may be more happening than is immediately apparent,
Bone Warrior."
"Perhaps."
Bone Warrior? "But, unlike Nyueng Bao, we are not warriors. We are
soldiers."
The old
man got his mind around that quickly. "As you will, Stone Soldier. All may
not be as it seems." Was he making these up as he went?
He did
not seem pleased by his speculation. He turned, hastened down the stair. His
grandsons had trouble keeping up.
"What
was that about?" Bucket asked.
"I
don't have a clue. I've been summoned by His Holiness, the Prince of the
Company." As I stepped to the stair I glanced at One-Eye. The little
wizard was staring toward the hills, about where Ky Dam had done the same. He
seemed both puzzled and unhappy.
I
didn't have time to ask. Nor did I have much inclination.
I had
had bad news enough already.
10
Mogaba
stands six feet five. Any fat on him has to be between his ears because there
isn't an ounce anywhere else. All bone and muscle, he moves like a cat, his
slightest twitch pure liquid grace. He works hard to stay hard but not to
become overly muscled. He is very dark but a deep mahogany more than an ebony.
He glows with conviction, an unshakable inner strength.
He has
a ready wit but never smiles. When he does show humor it is entirely surface,
for effect, an illusion spun for his audience. He doesn't feel it and probably
doesn't understand it. He is as focused as any human being who ever lived. And
that focus is the creation and maintenance of Mogaba, greatest warrior who ever
lived.
He is
almost as good as he wants to be. He might be as good as he thinks he is. I never
saw anyone who could match his individual skills.
The
other Nar are almost as good, almost as arrogantly self-confident.
Mogaba's
self-opinion is his big weakness but I don't think anyone could get him to
believe that. He and his reputation stand squarely at the center of his every
consideration.
Sadly,
self-indulgence and self-admiration aren't always traits that will inspire
soldiers to win battles.
There
is no love lost between Mogaba and the rest of us. His rigidity split the
Company into Old Crew and Nar factions. Mogaba envisions the Black Company as
an ages old holy crusade. Us Old Crew guys see it as a big unhappy family
trying to survive in a world that really is out to get us.
The
debate would be much more bitter were Shadowspinner not around to snap up the
mantle of bigger common enemy.
Many of
Mogaba's own people are less than thrilled with the way his mind is working
these days.
Something
Croaker harped about, from the moment he first set quill to paper, is what
might be called matters of form. It is not good form to bicker with your
superiors, however wrong they may be and however one-sided their determination
of their superiority is. I try to maintain good form.
Croaker
quickly elevated Mogaba to third in the Company, after himself and Lady,
because of his exceptional talents. But that did not automatically entitle
Mogaba to assume command if Croaker and Lady were gone. New Captains are
supposed to be elected. In a situation like the one here in Dejagore the custom
is to poll the soldiers to see if they think an immediate election is
necessary. If they think the old Captain has become mad, senile, dead,
incompetent, or otherwise in need of permanent replacement then a election will
be held.
I
cannot recall any instance in the Annals when the senior candidate was rejected
by the soldiers, but if an election were held today a precedent might be set.
In a secret ballot even many of the Nar might declare no confidence in Mogaba.
There
will be no vote while we are besieged. I will oppose any effort to hold one.
Mogaba may be mad and I may not be able to go along with him in areas he
considers religious, but only he has the will to control thousands of skittish
Taglian legionnaires while keeping the Jaicuri in line. If he should fall his
assistant Sindawe would step up, then Ochiba, and only then, maybe, if I can't
hide fast enough, me.
Soldiers
and civilians both fear Mogaba more than they respect him after all this time
besieged. And that troubles me. The Annals demonstrate over and over that fear
is the most fertile soil for treachery.
11
Mogaba
holds staff conferences in the citadel. There is a war room there, once the toy
of the sorceress StOrmshadow. Mogaba considers meeting there a great concession
to the distances us underlings must hike. He does not like leaving his own part
of the action. For that reason I could count on this being short.
He was
polite enough, though it was a strained courtesy obvious to all. He said,
"I received your message. It was not entirely clear."
"I garbled it intentionally. I didn't
want the messenger telling everybody on his way to see you."
"It
is not good news, then, I assume." He spoke the Jewel Cities dialect the
Company picked up when it was in service to the Syndic of Beryl. Most of us
used it only when we did not want the natives to understand what we were
saying. Mogaba used it because he did not yet have enough Taglian to get by
without interpreters. Even his Jewel Cities dialect was badly accented.
"Definitely
not good news," I said. Mogaba's friend Sindawe translated for the Taglian
officers present. I continued, "Goblin and One-Eye tell me Shadowspinner
is completely healthy again and means tonight to be his big comeback show. So
tonight won't be just another raid, it will be a big punchout for the whole
works."
A dozen
pairs of eyes stared, praying I was making the sort of bad joke Goblin and
One-Eye would find hilarious. Mogaba's own eyes were icy. He wanted to make me
recant by sheer weight of his gaze.
Mogaba
has no use for One-Eye or Goblin. They are one of the big sources of contention
between him and the Old Crew. He is sure that real wizards, however puny, have
no place among real warriors, who are supposed to rely on their strength, their
wit, their will, and even maybe their superior steel if they have it.
Goblin
and One-Eye, besides being wizards, besides being sloppy and undisciplined and
rowdy, worst of all fail to agree that Mogaba is the best thing that could have
happened to the Black Company.
Mogaba
hates Shadowspinner in part because he knows the Shadowmaster will never meet
him in a trial by combat that can be sung about down through the ages.
Mogaba
wants his place in the Annals. He lusts after a major place in the Annals. And
he is going to get that, but not the way he wants.
"Do
you have a suggestion about how to deal with this threat?" Mogaba showed
no emotion, though Shadowspinner getting well meant the date of our executions
had been advanced.
I
considered suggesting prayer but it was obvious Mogaba was not in the mood.
"Afraid not."
"There
is nothing in your books?"
He
meant the Annals. Croaker tried hard to get him to study them. Croaker was big
on looking for, and deferring to, precedent mainly because he lacked much
confidence in his mastery of strategy and leadership. On the other hand, Mogaba
lacked no confidence whatsoever. He always had an excuse not to study Company
history. Only recently had it occurred to me that he might not read or write.
Those are skills considered unmanly in some places. Maybe that was true among
the Nar of Gea-Xle, despite the fact that keeping the Annals was a holy duty of
our Black Company forebrethren.
The Nar
say very little about their beliefs. The rest of us are aware that they
consider us heretics, though.
"Very
little. The time-honored tactic is to attract the wizard's attention to a
secondary target where he will do less damage than he wants. You hold his
attention there till he gets tired or until you sneak up and cut his throat.
Sneakups aren't practical here. This time Spinner will protect himself better.
He might not even come out of his camp if we don't make him."
Mogaba
nodded, unsurprised. "Sindawe?"
Sindawe
is Mogaba's oldest and closest friend. They go back to early childhood. Sindawe
is now Mogaba's second in command and leader of the Taglian First Eegion, which
is the best of the Taglian formations. And the oldest. Croaker put Mogaba in
charge of training when first we arrived in Laglios and the First is the
juggernaut Mogaba built.
Sindawe
can pass as Mogaba's brother. Sometimes he acts like Mogaba's conscience.
Mogaba values his good opinion possibly more than he should.
Sindawe
said, "We could try to outrun them.... Whoa, Ga! I'm joking."
Mogaba
didn't get it. Or if he did he failed to see the humor.
I
offered, "Use artillery to distract him, wherever he is. And if we do
catch him in range we can hope we get lucky."
We did
that during the big battle that ended with us trapped. And it worked. We even
got lucky, some, which was why we were alive to be in deep shit now. But we did
not come near eliminating Shadowspinner.
"We
will include motion in everything," Mogaba decided. "Our artillerymen
will shoot and run. Wherever the Shadowmaster attacks directly we will fade
away instantly. We will cover with enfilading fire till his attention is drawn
elsewhere. We will not look him in the eye."
Mogaba
looked me in the eye. He wanted help from Goblin and One-Eye but his pride
would not let him ask. He is on record as saying he cannot abide sorcery, that
sorcery has no place in the Black Company. It is wicked, dishonorable, the
alternative of rogues. The man just cannot lay off the flattery. He spreads
that stuff all over those two clowns every time he sees them, too. He has made
them some big offers intended to get them to retire from "his"
Company.
Help?
Ain't it funny how flexible you get when absolute destruction looks you right
in the eye ?
Sort of
flexible. Mogaba never addressed the matter directly.
I did
not twist his tail. I never do. And I hope that drives him crazy. I said,
"We will all exercise all our talents to their limit. If we don't get
through this, our differences don't mean shit."
Mogaba
winced. Among the many things a Nar warrior does not do is employ colorful
language. Whatever language he uses.
Good
thing we were using the Beryl dialect. Our discussion had gone on long enough
that the Taglian officers were beginning to doubt Sindawe's bland translations.
We tried to show the outside world a single face. It was especially important
to deceive our employers. In the tradition of these things they are, likely,
already figuring out how to screw us as soon as we save their royal butts.
Counting
sworn brothers taken in since our advent in this forsaken end of the world, the
Nar and Old Crew factions together total sixty-nine men. Dejagore's main
defenders are ten thousand inadequately trained Taglian legionaires, some
willing but ineffective former Shadowlander slaves, and some even less
effective Jaicuri. Each day snaps our numbers. Old wounds and current diseases
thin our ranks as swiftly as enemy attacks. Croaker tried to teach good field
hygiene but it has not stuck anywhere outside the Company proper.
Mogaba
awarded me a small bow, the way honors are paid in these parts. He would not
thank me outright.
Sindawe
and Ochiba now had their heads together over some unit reports that had just
come in. Sindawe announced, "No time left for talk. They are about to
attack." He spoke Taglian. Unlike Mogaba, he made a grand effort to get
beyond pidgin. He strove to understand the culture and thinking of the several
Taglian peoples weird though they are.
Mogaba
said, "Then let's go to our posts. We don't want to disappoint
Shadowspinner." You could see the edge on the man. He was eager. His
excitement was almost unreasonable. He reviewed the tactics he wanted used to
reduce friendly casualties.
I left
without a word. Without being dismissed.
Mogaba
knew I did not consider him Captain. We discuss it occasionally. I will not
acknowledge him without a formal vote. He does not want an election yet,
either, I suspect because he fears his popularity is not what a Captain's
should be.
I will
not force the issue. I might get elected by the Old Crew faction. And I don't
want the job. I am not qualified.
I know
my limitations. I am no leader. Hell, I don't even handle these Annals very
well. I don't see how Croaker kept them up and did all the other stuff he had to
do at the same time.
I ran
all the way to my section of wall.
12
Something
hit me like a small, silent cyclone of darkness that dropped out of the night
and nowhere. It devoured me, unseen by anyone around. It grabbed hold of my
soul and yanked. I went into the darkness thinking, Boy, the Shadowmaster came
back in a huge way, didn't he ?
This
was unlike anything I had encountered ever before. But why come after me? There
were few players less significant than I was.
13
I was
summoned. I could not resist. I fought, but soon I realized that a strong part
of me did not want to win.
I was
confused. I had no idea what was happening. I was sleepy. . . . Was all this
just because I wasn't getting enough sleep?
A voice
called my name. The voice seemed vaguely familiar. "Murgen! Come home,
Murgen!" I felt violent motion, probably due to a blow I didn't feel.
"Come on, Murgen! You have to fight it."
What?
"He's
coming. He's coming back!"
I
groaned. A major accomplishment, apparently, because it generated more
excitement.
I
groaned again. Now I knew who I was but not where I was or why, or who that
voice belonged to. "I'm getting up!" I tried to say. Must be some
kind of training. "I'm getting up, god-damnit!" And I tried. But my
muscles would not lift me.
They
were rigid.
Hands
pulled on my arms.
A new
voice said, "Stand him up. Get him walking."
The
original voice said, "We've got to find a way to head these seizures off
before they happen."
"I'm
open to suggestion."
"You're
the doctor."
"It's
not a disease, Goblin. You're the sorcerer."
"It
ain't sorcery, either, Chief."
"Then
what the hell is it?"
"Anyway, it isn't any sorcery like any
I ever seen or heard of."
They
had me upright now. My knees would not cooperate but these guys would not let
me fall down.
I
opened an eye. I saw Goblin and the Old Man. But the Old Man was dead. I tried
my tongue. "I think I'm back." This time I had it. This time my words
were slurred but understandable.
"He
is back," Goblin said.
"Keep
him moving."
"He
ain't drunk, Croaker. He's back. He's aware. He can hang on here. You can hang
on here now, can't you, Murgen?"
"Yeah.
I'm here. I won't drift away as long as I'm awake." Where was here? I looked
around. Oh. There. Again.
"What
happened?" the Old Man asked.
"I
got pulled into the past again."
"Dejagore?"
"It's
always Dejagore. This was the day you came back. The day I met Sarie."
Croaker
grunted.
"It
hurts less each time. This trip wasn't bad. But you lose a lot besides the
pain. I didn't see half the horror I know was there."
"Maybe
that's good. Maybe if you can shed all of that you can break out of this."
"I'm
not crazy, Croaker. I'm not doing this to myself."
Goblin said,
"It's getting harder to pull him back, not easier. This time he wouldn't
have made it without us."
My turn
to grunt. I could get caught in a cycle of reliving the nadir of my life, over
and over.
Goblin
had not guessed the worst. I was not back yet. They had dragged me up out of
the deeps of yesterday but I was not home. This was my past, too, only this
time I was aware of my dislocation. And I knew what evils lurked in my future.
"What
was it like?" Goblin stared like that every time. Like some facial tic of
mine might be the one clue he needs to unravel the puzzle and rescue me.
Croaker leaned against the wall, the way he does, satisfied now that I was
talking.
"Same
as every other time. Just less painful. Although this time when I started out I
wasn't really me. That was different. I was just a disembodied voice, just a
viewpoint giving a guide's sort of speech to a faceless visitor."
"Also
disembodied?" Croaker asked. This variation had him interested.
"No.
There was somebody there. A complete person but he had no face."
Goblin
and Croaker exchanged troubled looks. At that time Otto and Hagop were still
away. "What sex?" Croaker asked.
"Wasn't
clear. It wasn't the Faceless Man, though. I don't think it was anybody from
our past. Might just have been something out of my own head. I might have
separated me into pieces so I wouldn't have to deal with so much pain in such
big blasts."
Goblin
shook his head, not buying that. "It ain't you, Murgen. Something is doing
this. Besides who, we want to know why and why you. Did you catch any clues?
How did it go? Try for specifics. It's teeny details that will give us our
handle."
"I
was detached completely when it started. I went down into it gradually. Then I
was the Murgen back then, living it all over again, trying to get it all down
in the Annals, unaware of the future at all. You remember going swimming when
you were a kid? When somebody would come up out of the water behind you to dunk
you? He would jump in the air and put his hand on top of your head, then let
his weight push you under? If you were in deep water instead of just going
straight down you would sort of curve through the water and lay out flat? This
whole thing went like that. Only once I was out flat I couldn't float to the
top. I forgot that I have done it all before, almost always the same way, who
knows how many times? Maybe if I could remember the future back then I could
change the way things went, or maybe at least I could make extra copies of my
books so they don't get. . . ."
"What?"
Croaker was alert now. Mention the Annals and you have his undivided attention.
"What was that?"
Did he
realize that I was remembering the future? In this time my volumes of the
Annals are still safe.
The
fear and the pain swarmed in on me, then. The despair followed. Because despite
all those plunges back there, and despite the visits here, I cannot stop
anything from happening. No amount of willpower can divert the river from the
horrors.
For a
moment I could not talk because I had so much to say. Then, obliquely, I
managed, "You came here about the Grove of Doom. Right?" I knew this
night. I have been through this country often enough to know its terrain well.
Here the landscape varies slightly from visit to visit but afterward time
becomes the same relentless river.
If I
squinted I could almost see the ghosts of other versions playing out alternate
dialogs.
Croaker
was surprised. "The grove?"
"You
want me to take the Company out to the Grove of Doom. Right? It's time for some
Deceiver festival. You think Narayan Singh himself might show up for this one.
You think there's a good chance to catch him or to catch somebody who knows
where he has your baby hidden. Worst chance, you think we'll get the
opportunity to kill lots of them and make them hurt more than they already
do."
Croaker
has been implacable in his resolve to exterminate the Deceivers. More so even
than Lady has been, I think, and she was the more deeply insulted of the two.
Once upon a time he wanted his legacy to be the completion of the Black
Company's historical cycle. He wanted to be captain when the Company returned
to Khatovar. He has the dream still but a nightmare shoved it aside. The
nightmare demands satisfaction. Until its gossamer thread of terror, pain,
cruelty and revenge has been spun, Khatovar is going to remain nothing but an
excuse, not a destination.
Croaker
eyed me uncertainly. "How could you know about the grove?"
"I
came back knowing." Which was true. But the two of us would not give the
same meaning to "back."
"You'll
take the men out there?"
"I
can't not."
Goblin
eyed me weirdly, too, now.
I would
do it. And I knew how it would go but I could not tell them that. There were
two minds inside my head. The one doing this thinking wasn't the one heaving on
the running lines and reefing the sails.
"I'm
all right now," I told them. And, "I think there is a way to keep me
from falling back. At least, to keep me from going so far back. But I can't get
it out." I would have shared gladly. I did not want to keep stumbling off
the edge of time to fall back into those too real dark dreams of Dejagores
past. Not even if I tumbled into a viewpoint almost blind to the horror and
cruelty everywhere then.
Croaker
started to say something.
I interrupted. "I'll be down for the
staff meeting in ten minutes."
I could
not tell them anything directly but maybe I could get something out sideways.
But I
knew nothing would change. The worst of all horrors was waiting up ahead and I
was powerless to avert it.
I'd
still do my best in the grove. Just in case this time that would come out
differently. If I could remember the future well enough to make the right
moves.
You.
Whoever you are. Whatever you are. You keep dragging me to the wellsprings of
pain. Why do you do that? What do you want? Who are you? What are you?
As
always, you give me no answers.
14
The
goddamned wind had teeth. We huddled in our blankets, shivering, as unmotivated
as guys get without hanging it up. Weren't many of us wanted to be in that
haunted grove in the first place.
Yet
something I could not quite catch, some elusive emotion deep inside me, told me
this was critical, that this had to be done just right. That more than I could imagine
hinged upon that.
Unseen
trees creaked and cracked. The wind groaned and whined. It was easy to let your
imagination get away and brood on the fact that thousands had been tortured and
murdered there. You might hear their moans inside the wind, their pleas for
mercy ignored even now. You might expect to see broken corpses rising up to
demand vengeance on the living.
I faked
being a hero. I could not stop shaking, though. I pulled my blanket tighter.
That did not help, either.
"Candyass!"
One-Eye sneered. Like the little shit wasn't about to have a seizure himself.
"That bonehead Goblin don't quit farting around and get his dead ass back
here I'm gonna go strip him barebutt and nail him to a chunk of ice."
"That's
creative."
"Don't
be no wiseass, Kid. I'll. . ."
An
especially exuberant gust took off with what he would.
It
wasn't just the cold making us shake, though nobody would admit that. It was
the place and the mission and the fact that heavy cloud cover robbed us of even
the meager comradeship of starlight.
It was
goddamned dark. And these Stranglers might now be friends with the man who ran
shadows. A little bird said. Actually, a big black bird said.
"We
spend too much time in town," I grumbled. One-Eye didn't respond. Thai Dei
did, though, with a grunt. But that was a speech for this particular Nyueng
Bao.
The
wind brought the creak of a stealthy footfall. One-Eye barked, "Goddamnit,
Goblin! Quit stomping around. You want the whole damned world to know we're
here?" Never mind that Goblin could not be heard five feet away, dancing.
One-Eye refuses to be constrained by mundane reason or consistency.
Goblin
drifted into place in front of me, squatted. His little yellow teeth chattered.
"All set," he murmured. "Whenever you're ready."
"We'd
better do it, then. Before I break out in a case of common sense." I
grunted as I rose. My knees crackled. My muscles did not want to stretch any
more. I swore. I was getting too damned old for this shit, though at
thirty-four I was the baby of the bunch. "Move out," I said, loudly
enough to be heard by most everyone. You couldn't use hand signals in that
darkness.
We were
downwind and Goblin had done his stuff. Noise was not a worry.
The men
drifted away, mostly so quietly that I had trouble believing I was alone
suddenly except for my bodyguard. We moved, too. Thai Dei covered my back. The
night didn't bother him. Maybe he has eyes like a cat.
I had
plenty of mixed feelings. This was the first time I had run a raid. I was not
sure I was over Dejagore enough to handle it. I shied at shadows and remained
crazy suspicious of everybody outside the Company, for no reason I could
understand. But Croaker insisted, so here I was sneaking around in a dark and
evil forest with icicles hanging off my butt, directing the first purely
Company op in years. Only it wasn't so purely Company when you considered the
fact that all my guys had bodyguards with them.
I got
over the self-confidence hurdle just by getting myself moving. Hell, it was too
late to stop anything.
I
stopped worrying about me and went to work worrying about how we would look
after the raid was over. If we blew it we could not blame that on Taglian
treachery or factionalism or incompetence, the usual sand in the machine.
I
reached the crest of a low ridge. My hands were frozen but my body was wet
inside my clothing. Light wavered ahead. The Deceivers, those lucky bastards,
had a bonfire to keep them warm. I paused to listen. I heard nothing.
How did
the Old Man know the leaders of the Strangler bands would gather for this
particular festival? It was downright spooky the way he knew stuff sometimes.
Maybe Lady was rubbing off. Maybe he had some magical talent he never
mentioned.
I
observed, "We're about to find out if Goblin still has that talent."
Thai
Dei did not spend a precious grunt. Silence was comment enough.
There
were supposed to be thirty to forty top Deceivers over there. We hunt them
relentlessly and have done so since Narayan snatched Lady and Croaker's baby.
The Old Man has eliminated mercy from the Company vocabulary. And that fits
Deceiver philosophy perfectly, though I would bet those guys up ahead would not
think that way in a minute.
Goblin
still had the knack. The sentries were napping. Still, inevitably, all did not
go as planned.
I was
fifty feet from the bonfire, sneaking along beside this especially big, ugly
shelter when somebody went heeling and toeing out its end like all the devils
in Hell were after him. He bent under the weight of a big bundle. That bundle
wriggled and whimpered.
"Narayan
Singh!" I knew him instantly. "Stop!"
Right,
Murgen. Freeze him with your voice.
The
rest of the guys recognized him too. A yell went up. We could not believe our
luck, though I had been warned that the big prize might be there to grab. Singh
was the number one Deceiver, the villain Lady and the Captain want to spend
long years killing, an inch at a time.
The
bundle had to be their daughter.
I
yelled orders. Instead of responding the men did whatever they thought of.
Mostly they went after Singh. The racket wakened the rest of the Deceivers. The
quickest tried to run.
Luckily,
some of the guys stayed on the job.
"You
warm now?" Goblin asked. I puffed heartily as I watched Thai Dei shove a
skinny blade into the eye of a sleep befuddled Strangler. Thai Dei doesn't cut
throats. He doesn't like the mess.
It was
over. "How many did we get? How many got away?" I stared the
direction Singh had fled. The silence there was not promising. The guys would
have raised a real hoorah had they caught him.
Damn! I
was excited for a while there. If only I could have dragged him back to
Taglios. If wishes were fishes.
"Keep some alive. We'll want somebody to tell us bedtime stories. One-Eye.
How the hell did Singh all of a sudden know we were here?"
The
runt shrugged. "I don't know. Maybe his goddess goosed him and told him to
haul ass."
"Give
me a break. Kina didn't have anything to do with it." But I wasn't that
sure. Sometimes it is hard to disbelieve.
Thai
Dei gestured.
"Right,"
I said. "Just what I was thinking myself."
One-Eye
looked puzzled. Goblin grumbled, "What?" My wizards. Right on top of
everything.
"Sometimes
I wonder if you guys could find your dicks without a map. The shelter,
old-timers. The shelter. Don't it seem like that's an awful lot of shack for
one runt killer and a kid barely tall enough to bite you on the kneecap? A bit
big even for a living saint and the daughter of a goddess?"
One-Eye
developed a nasty grin. "Nobody else came out, did they? Yeah. You want I
should start a fire?"
Before
I could answer him Goblin squealed. I whirled. A shapeless darkness, visible
only because of the bonfire, reared out of the shelter entrance then I slammed
into the ground, felled by Thai Dei. Fire blasted over my head. Lights
crackled. Balls of flame darted in from all around.
The
killing darkness took on a moth-eaten look. Then it came apart.
That
darkness was why so many of us had been shivering before the attack. But we won
this round.
I sat
up, crooked a finger. "Let's see what we've caught. It ought to be
interesting." My guys knocked the shelter apart. Sure enough, they turned
up a half dozen wrinkled little old men, brown as chestnuts. "Shadowweavers.
Running with the Stranglers. Now isn't that interesting?"
The
geezers gobbled their willingness to surrender.
We had
run into their kind before. They never were big on personal heroics.
A
soldier called Wishbone said, "These Shadowlanders are getting good at
this 'I surrender' stuff." He sneered. "Everybody down there must be
practicing their handy Taglian phrases."
"Except
Longshadow," I reminded. I told Thai Dei, "Thanks."
He
shrugged, a gesture foreign to the Nyueng Bao. The world did touch him
occasionally. "Sahra would expect it."
And
that was very Nyueng Bao. He would blame his actions on his sister's
expectations rather than on any notion of duty or obligation or even
friendship.
"What
are we supposed to do with these guys?" Wishbone asked. "We got any
use for them?"
"Save
a couple. The oldest and one other. Goblin. You never said how many got
away."
"Three.
That counts Singh but not the kid. But we're going to get one of them three
back on account of he's hiding in the bushes right over there."
"Collect
him. I'll give him to the Old Man."
Sarky
One-Eye cracked, "Give them a little authority, they turn into field
marshals. I remember this kid when he was so green he still had sheep shit
between his toes. He didn't know what shoes were for." But the humor
wasn't in his eye. Every move I made he watched like a hawk. Like a crow, in
fact, although we had no crows hanging around tonight. Whatever experiment
Goblin and One-Eye had going in that area was a complete success during this
outing.
Goblin
suggested, "Ease up, Murgen. We'll get the job done. How about some of you
lazy asses toss a couple logs on the fire?" He began to circle the hidden
Deceiver in the direction opposite that taken by One-Eye.
They
were right. I get too serious under stress. I was a thousand years old already.
Surviving Dejagore had not been easy. But all the rest of these guys had come
through that, too. They had seen Mogaba's slaughters of innocents. They had
suffered the pestilences and plagues. They had seen the cannibalism and human
sacrifices, the treacheries and betrayals and all the rest. And they had come
away without letting the nightmares rule them.
I have
to get a handle on it. I have to get some emotional distance and perspective.
But there is something going on inside me that is beyond my control or
understanding. Sometimes I feel like there are several of me in there, all
mixed up, sometimes sitting behind the real me watching, watching. There may be
no chance for me to recover complete sanity and stability.
Goblin
came strutting back. He and One-Eye accompanied a man who was not much more
than skin and bones. Few Deceivers are in good shape these days. They have no
friends anywhere. They are hunted like vermin. Huge bounties ride on their
shoulders.
Goblin
flashed his toadlike grin. "We've got us a red-hand man here, Murgen. A
genuine black rumel guy with the red palm. What do you think of that?"
The
thought lightened my heart. The prisoner was truly a top Strangler. The red
hand meant that he had been there when Narayan Singh tricked Lady into thinking
she was being inducted into the Strangler cult when in fact the Deceivers were
really consecrating her unborn child as daughter of their goddess Kina.
But
Lady had employed a trick of her own, marking every Strangler there with the
red hand that could not be denied later. Nothing they tried would take the
color away, short of amputation. And a one-handed Strangler could not manage
the rumel, the strangling scarf, that was the tool of the Deceivers' holy
trade.
"The
Old Man will be pleased." A red-hand man would know what was going on
inside his cult.
I
crowded closer to the fire. Thai Dei, done helping dispose of redundant
shadowweavers, eased in beside me. How much had Dejagore changed him? I could
not imagine him ever being anything but dour, taciturn, remorseless and
pitiless, even as a toddler.
Goblin,
I noted, was doing that thing he did lately where he watched me from the corner
of his eye while pretending to do something else. What were he and One-Eye
looking for?
The
runt held his hands out. "Fire feels good."
15
Paranoia
has become our way of life. We have become the new Nyueng Bao. We trust no one.
We let no one outside the Black Company know what we are doing until we are
sure what the response will be. In particular we prefer keeping the
Prahbrindrah Drah and his sister, the Radisha Drah, our employers, way back
there in the deep dark shadows.
They
are not to be trusted at all, ever, except to serve their own closest
interests.
I
smuggled my prisoners into the city and hid them in a warehouse near the river,
a Company friendly Shadar fish place possessed of a very distinctive air. My
men scattered to their families or someplace where they could drink beer. I was
satisfied. With one quick, nasty stab we had decimated the surviving Deceiver
leadership. We almost got that fiend Narayan Singh. I got within spitting
distance of Croaker's baby. In all honesty I could report that she seemed all
right.
Thai
Dei knocked the prisoners to their knees, wrinkled his nose.
"You're
right," I agreed. "But this place don't stink half as bad as your
swamp does." Taglios claims the river delta but the Nyueng Bao disagree.
Thai
Dei grunted. He could take a joke as well as the next guy.
He does
not look like much. He is a foot shorter than I am. I outweigh him by eighty
pounds. And I am far prettier. He has crudely cropped black hair that sticks
out in unkempt spikes. Skinny, lantern-jawed, taciturn and surly, Thai Dei is
entirely unappetizing. But he does his job.
A
Shadar fishmonger brought the Captain to us. Croaker was getting old. We were
going to have to call him Boss or Chief or something. You cannot call the
Captain the Old Man once he's really old, can you?
He was
dressed like a Shadar cavalryman, all turban, beard and plain grey clothing. He
eyed Thai Dei coolly. He did not have a Nyueng Bao bodyguard himself. He
loathed the idea despite his having to disguise himself whenever he wanted to
walk the streets alone. Bodyguards are not traditional. Croaker is stubborn
about Company traditions.
Hell,
the Shadowmaster's officers all employ bodyguards. Some have several. They
could not survive without them.
Thai
Dei reflected Croaker's gaze impassively, unimpressed by the presence of the
great dictator. He might say, "He is one man. I am one man. We begin
even."
Croaker
examined my prizes. "Tell it."
I told
it. "But I missed Narayan. I was this close. That bastard has a guardian
angel. There's no way he should have slipped Goblin's sleep spell. We chased
him for two days but even Goblin and One-Eye couldn't hang onto his track
forever."
"He
had help. Maybe from his guardian demon. Maybe from his new buddy the
Shadowmaster, too."
"How
come they went back to the grove? How did you know they would be there?"
I
thought he would say a big black bird told him.
They
are less numerous these days but the crows still follow him everywhere. He
talks to them. Sometimes they talk to him, too. So he says.
"They
had to come someday, Murgen. They are slaves to their religion."
But why
this particular Festival of Lights? How did you know?
I did
not press. You don't press Croaker. He has grown cranky and secretive in his old
age. In his own Annals he did not always tell the whole truth about personal
things, his age especially.
He
kicked the shadowweaver. "One of Longshadow's pet spook doctors. You'd
think he wouldn't have enough left to waste them anymore."
"I
don't reckon he expected us to jump them."
Croaker
tried to smile. He produced a nasty, sarcastic sneer instead. "He's got
lots of surprises coming." He kicked the Deceiver. "Let's don't hide
them. Let's take them to the Palace. What's the matter?"
Ice had
blasted my back, like I was out on the wind of the Grove of Doom again. I
didn't know why but I had a grim sense of foreboding.
"I
don't know. You're the boss. Anything special you want in the Annals?"
"You're
the Annalist now, Murgen. You write what you have to write. I can always
bitch." Unlikely. I send everything over but I don't think much gets read.
He asked, "What was special about the raid?"
"It
was colder than a well digger's ass out there."
"And
that walking sack of camel snot Narayan Singh got away from us again. So that's
what you write. Him and his kind are going to get back into our story before
we're done. When we're roasting him, I hope. Did you see her? Was she all
right?"
"All
I saw really was a bundle that Singh carried. I think it was her."
"Had
to be. He never lets her out of his sight." He pretended he did not care.
"Bring them to the Palace." That chill hit me again. "I'll make
sure the guards know you're coming."
Thai
Dei and I exchanged looks. This might get tough. People in the streets would
recognize the prisoners. And the prisoners might have friends. And for sure
they did have enemies by the thousand. They might not survive the trip. Or we
might not.
The Old
Man said, "Tell your wife I said hello and I hope she likes the new
apartment."
"Sure."
I shivered. Thai Dei frowned at me.
Croaker
produced a sheaf of papers rolled into a tube. "This came in from Lady
while you were gone. It's for the Annals."
"Someone
must have died."
He
grinned. "Bang it around and fit it in. But don't polish it so much she
gets all righteous again. I can't stand it when she flays me with my own
arguments."
"I
learned the first time."
"One-Eye
says he thinks he knows where he left his papers from when he thought he was
going to have to keep the Annals."
"I've
heard that one before."
Croaker
grinned again, then ducked out.
16
Four
hundred men and five elephants swarmed around an incomplete stockade. The
nearest friendly outpost lay a hard day's march northward. Shovels gnawed the
earth. Hammers pounded. Elephants swung timbers off wagons and helped set them
upright. Only the oxen stood around, lazing in their harnesses.
This
nameless post was barely a day old, the newest point in the relentless Taglian
leapfrog into the Shadowlands. Only its watchtower was complete. The lookout
there scanned the southern horizon intently. There was an electric urgency in
the air, a heaviness like the smell of old death, a premonition.
The
soldiers were all veterans. Not a one considered fleeing his nerves. Each had
developed the habit and expectation of victory.
The
sentinel began to gaze fixedly. "Captain!"
A man
distinct for his coloring dropped a shovel, looked up. His true name was Cato
Dahlia. The Black Company called him Big Bucket. Wanted for common theft in his
home city, he had become advisor commander of a battalion of Taglian border
rangers. He was a hardass leader with a reputation for getting his jobs done
and bringing his people back alive.
Bucket
scrambled onto the observation platform, puffing. "What have you
got?"
The
lookout pointed. Bucket squinted. "Help me out here, son. These eyes ain't
what they used to be." He could see nothing but the low humped backs of
the Loghra Hills. Scattered clouds hung above those.
"Watch."
Bucket
trusted his soldiers. He selected them carefully. He watched.
One
small cloud hung lower than the others, dragging a slanting shadow. This rogue
thunderhead did not travel the same direction as the rest of its family.
"Headed
right for us?"
"Looks
like it, sir."
Bucket
relied on his intuition. It had served him well during this war without major
battles. And intuition told him that cloud was dangerous.
He
descended, spread word to expect an attack. The men of the construction
company, although not combat soldiers, did not want to withdraw. Sometimes
Bucket's reputation worked against him. His rangers had prospered, freebooting
across the frontier. Others wanted a share.
Bucket
compromised. He sent one platoon north with the animals, which were too
valuable to risk. The other workers stayed. They overturned their wagons in the
gaps in the stockade.
The
cloud advanced steadily. Nothing could be seen inside its shadow and tail of
falling rain. A chill ran before it. The Taglian soldiers shivered and pranced
to keep warm.
Two
hundred yards beyond the ditch, teams of two men shivered in covered, concealed
pits lighted by special candles. One man maintained a watch.
Rain
and darkness arrived. Behind the initial few yards of downpour the rain
slackened to a drizzle. Men appeared. They looked old and sad, ragged and pale,
vacant and hopeless, hunched against the chill. They looked as though they had
spent their entire lives in the rain. They bore their rusting weapons without
spirit. They could have been an army raised from the dead.
Their
line passed the pits. Behind them came horsemen of the same sort, advancing
like zombies. Next came massed infantry. Then came the elephants.
The men
in the pits spied the elephants. They used crossbows to speed poisoned shafts.
The elephants wore no belly armor. The poison caused intense pain. The maddened
beasts rampaged through their own formations. The Shadowlanders had no idea why
the animals were enraged.
Little
shadows found the pits. They tried to slither inside. Candlelight drove them
back. They left a deeper chill and a smell of death behind.
The
shadows found a pit where rain had gotten to the candle. They left shrieking,
grimacing death in a grave already dug.
Lady
encountered the northbound laborers. She questioned them, considered the cloud
in the distance. "This may be what we're after," she told her
companions. "Ride!" She urged her stallion to a gallop. Foaled in
sorcerous stables when she was empress of the north, that giant black
outdistanced the rest of her party quickly. Lady studied the cloud as she
galloped. Three similar clouds had been reported near sites where ranger
companies had been overrun. This was exactly what she had come to investigate.
It took only minutes to fathom how the raids were managed. Lines of dark power
had been laid down long before the Shadowlanders withdrew from this region. The
attackers were controlled through those. They would fight without wills of their
own while run by those lines.
She
could scramble the lines easily now that she sensed them but chose not to do
so. Let the attack proceed. These things cost the Shadowlanders more dearly
than they cost Taglios.
Longshadow
must realize that. So why did he find the exchange worthwhile ?
She
entered the ranger encampment by leaping her mount over an upturned wagon. She
dismounted as an amazed Bucket ran to meet her. He looked like a condemned man
granted a last minute reprieve. "It's the Howler, I think," he said.
"Why?"
Lady dragged her gear down from behind her saddle, started changing right
there. "What can he hope to accomplish?"
"I
think it ain't what they're doing but who they're doing it to that matters,
Lieutenant." Though she commanded armies, Lady's Company title remained
Lieutenant.
"Who
they're doing it to? Yes! Of course." Every unit lost had been led by
Company men. Seven brothers had fallen. "They're picking us off." The
belief that the Company is invincible is the backbone of Taglian military
morale and the black beast of Taglian politics. "That's crafty. Must be
Howler's idea. He does love to blindside you."
Bucket
helped her with her armor. That was gothically ornate, black and shiny, too
pretty to be much use in close combat. But her job was to fight sorcery, not
soldiers. Her armor was surfaced by layer upon layer of protective spells.
Rain
began to fall as she donned her helmet. Threads of fire snaked along channels
etched into the surface of her armor. She followed Bucket up the watchtower.
Rain
roared down. Sounds of combat grew louder, nearer. Lady ignored those, extended
sorcerous senses in a search for the sorcerer known as the Howler. That ancient
and evil being did not betray himself but he was out there somewhere. She could
smell him.
Was it
possible he had learned to control his screaming?
"I'll
catch up with you, you little bastard. Meantime. . . ." She reached down.
A fog formed, became dense, slithered between the raindrops, gained color.
Pastels swirled, deepened, darkened. Soon the entire storm glowed as though
some mad artist had splash-painted it with watercolors.
There
were screams inside the storm.
The
weather stopped moving. The shrieks of lost soldiers peaked, faded. The
Shadowmaster's lines of power, twisting and mutating, had turned lethal.
Lady
resumed searching for the Howler. She discovered him stealing southward, flying
low and timidly, fleeing the pastel death that had begun eating its way back
along the lines of power. She flung a hastily concocted killing spell. It
failed. Howler's lead was too great. But he did abandon stealth to run hard.
Lady cursed like any line trooper frustrated.
The
rain faded away. The Taglian survivors appeared one by one, at first awed by
the carnage, then grumbling about all the graves that needed digging. Few
Shadowlander survivors were found.
Lady
told Bucket, "Tell them to look at the bright side. There will be prize
money for the captured animals." The Shadowlander animals, excepting the elephants,
had not suffered badly.
Lady
glared southward, unforgiving. "Next time, old friend."
17
...
falling . . . again. . . .
Trying
to hang on. So tired. When I get tired the present gets slippery.
Fragments.
Not
even fragments of today.
The
past. Not so long ago.
Freezing
my ass off. Failing to catch the great villain Narayan.
Lady at
play down south.
Fish
stench.
The
sleeping man. The screaming Deceiver. Dead men.
Only
memories but happier than tonight. There is too much pain here.
It is
my apocalypse.
Slipping.
Can't
keep my eyes from closing. The summons is too damned powerful.
The
pillars might be mistaken for relics of a fallen city. They are not. They are
too few and too randomly placed. Nor has a one ever fallen, though many have
been gnawed deeply by the teeth of the hungry winds.
In the
lightning flares, or in the dawns and sunsets when light steals beneath the
edges of the sky, tiny golden characters blaze upon the faces of the columns.
It is
immortality of a sort.
After
dark the wind dies. After dark silence rules the glittering stone.
18
. . .
sliding away. . . .
A vast
whirlpool pulling me down.
Perhaps
a force pushing. Was that a lying promise of an end to pain?
I
cannot resist.
All
lies. Endless lies.
Brown
pages, torn pages stiff with blood. Agony. Hard to ride that anchor through the
storm.
19
There
you are! Were you lost? Welcome back. Come! Come! The great adventure is about
to begin. The players are all in place. The engines are wound tight. The spells
are collected and ready, in arsenal number. Oh, it will be a grand night of
doom.
Look
there! Look there. Remember them? Goblin and One-Eye, the wizards? But is that
really them? There are two more just like them right over there. And see this.
And that. And there. One, two, three Murgens.
No.
Definitely not. You can't teach those two to suck eggs. They have been in the
fooled you business since your granny's greatgranny was a stinky little
surprise for your however-many-greats grandpa. They have set glamors all over
this part of the city. If you are a Shadowlander soldier you won't be able to
tell the figments from the real thing till one of them sticks a knife in you.
Look
there! Raven and Silent. They have been gone for years. And there. That is the
old Captain, dead since Juniper. No, they won't scare any Shadowlanders with
who they might be. Not right away. The southerners never heard of them.
What?
You are
right. Absolutely right. Nobody here but Otto and Hagop will know them, either.
But that doesn't matter. What matters is they can be seen and hardly anyone
will know which ones are dangerous and which are illusions.
This is
a first trial. A big experiment, saved up special for the night of
Shadowspinner's big attack.
Yes.
Yes. He did hit hard not that long ago. But he wasn't really going for a
knockout then. He would have taken it, but that was really a reconnaissance in
force, meant to support planning for this attack.
It is
going to be a grand show.
Oh, no,
there isn't one ghost anywhere else in Dejagore. Mogaba wouldn't have it. He
has no grasp of illusion as a weapon. He has no idea how the Company really
worked. He clings to his grand notion of chivalrous warfare, the great deadly
game, all honor and set rules. He would settled this mess in a trial by combat
between him and any champion the Shadowlanders care to send out.
Oh!
Look! That one is interesting. That ugly sucker is Toad-killer Dog. He was a
real nasty devil dog. And the Limper! Oh, yes. Brilliant. If the man behind
Shadowspinner's mask is anyone the Company has faced before those illusions are
provocations he will have to test. He will betray himself.
No, of
course the Shadowmasters would not risk an entire kingdom on the outcome of a
fight between two men. Their champion might lose.
Yes.
Mogaba is naive about some things. He is an arrogant, cruel, unsympathetic
general, too.
Ooh.
Hear those trumpets. The Company has its own personal bunch of bad guys down
front. Let's go to the ramparts and watch from close up.
No.
They aren't really bright. Well, you could say that if they were bright they
wouldn't be in that army in the first place but that wouldn't be fair. Not many
of those guys had a choice about signing up. Their only real motivation is
their fear of the Shadowmasters.
Sure.
No argument. That makes them no less deadly. Hell, a rock can fall out of the
sky and kill you.
Yes,
this definitely is the big one. Shadowspinner is set to send every man. Maybe
shadows have come up from Overlook to help.
Bats!
Ha. And crows. Which is chasing which? Duck! Almost got you. They are all over.
Never been this many around before.
What is
that racket? Oh. Bucket yelling at one of the Murgens to get behind something
because he don't want to carry no bodies down no goddamn stairs.
And
here comes the first barrage. And if that racket across town means anything the
Shadowlanders are hitting hard about where the third and fourth cohorts of the First
Legion are stationed. Those are good regiments. They will put up a fight.
20
Like a
regular hailstorm, isn't it? Makes you wonder where they got all the goddamned
arrows and javelins for their engines. Just stay under the mantlet, you'll be
fine. They aren't good at laying plunging fire onto elevated targets.
If they
let up before they attack the Jaicuri will come out and collect the missiles
and bring them to the soldiers. The Shadowlanders will get them back business
end first.
No, the
Jaicuri do not love Mogaba. They don't love the Taglians or the Black Company,
either. They wish the whole mob was gone. But they have some dark suspicions
about what will happen if Shadowspinner recaptures this burg. So they sort of
try to help, but not much. Not yet.
They
help some, they figure maybe Mogaba might be less likely to kick them out next
time he is in one of his moods.
The
sky? Dark as the inside of a priest's heart, isn't it? Oh. Yes. You're right.
It isn't an auspicious sort of night. Never is then they attack without benefit
of a full moon. It's devil's work for sure, then. Usually it means the
Shadowmasters want the darkness so they can run their pets to their best
advantage. Or they want everybody terrified that there are shadows to come.
Look at them scurry! Those Jaicuri are motivated tonight, If they become
involved in actually fighting it could be closer than Mogaba or Shadowspinner
expect. Whoa! What was that? Look at that. What the hell is it? That rosy light
over the hills. Here they come. Going to take their whack at breaking the
Company. You don't think so? Maybe you are right. This could be meant to keep
the Company pinned while Spinner concentrates somewhere softer.
Look at
them down there, though. Like maggots. And no covering fire now.
You're
right. The engines will be moving to support the main attack now.
Check
that light. It keeps getting brighter. No. Now it's going away. And it doesn't
seem like anyone else noticed. That is a little too weird.
Oh.
Right again. Must have been a signal to the Shadowlander officers. The racket
is getting louder, now you mention it.
No, I
don't like the sound of it either. The attack had become generalized.
Ho!
Look over there! Now we have it there, too. What? The light. Don't you see it?
There behind the ramparts?
Yes. I
see. You're right again. It is different. This is kind of like the cold light
of a full moon tinged with a little blue, isn't it. Yeah. It's kind of misty,
too. Sort of like we are seeing it through an autumn haze. There. Now it's so
bright you can make out the fighting on the far wall.
Right.
Fighting. That means they have a foothold there already. And Mogaba don't have
any reserves to send up.
Guess
we can bend over and kiss our butts goodbye, friend.
21
Damn!
The shit is about to start flying but I just realized that when I started
putting these notes together I missed doing the famous formula Croaker always
used to open a new volume. So here goes:
In
those days the Company was in service to the Prabrindrah Drah of Taglios, a
prince whose domains spanned territories more vast than those of many empires.
We were participating in the occupation and protection of the recently captured
city Dejagore.
And I
hope princie and his skag sister the Radisha choke on our memory.
22
The
shitstorm arrived. Every man defending our section of wall stayed busy
returning some of it to the southerners. The illusory doppelgangers appeared to
be hard at work, too. Funny how they could wander around never getting hurt.
"One-Eye!
Goblin!" I yelled. "Where the hell are you peckerheads? What the
frack is going on over there?" I watched a feeble arrow pass through a
Murgen a dozen yards away. "What's that weird light?" Whatever it
was, it gave me the feeling that things could get worse than they looked
already.
I got
no response whatsoever from my favorite wizards. "Rudy. Flip a flare ball
out there. Let's see what's sneaking around." Until recently my now less
than favorite wizards had provided spot illumination. "Bucket! Where the
hell are Goblin and One-Eye?" Ten minutes ago I had three pairs underfoot,
all of them squabbling. Now they were gone and the Shadowlanders were quieter
than mice below.
Red
Rudy yelled at Loftus and Cletus. One of their engines thumped. A blazing ball
arced outward, its only purpose to betray what the enemy was doing in the
darkness.
Sparkle
piped, "I seen them headed downstairs."
Suckass.
"Why?" This was for sure not the time to wander away.
"Uh....
They went to talk to Pirmhi and some of them guys from the Horse Brigade."
I shook
my head. I would choke them myself. In the middle of a goddamned battle, . . .
The
fireball revealed that the Shadowlanders had pulled back from the wall.
Spending our missiles was a waste. The southerners were setting up engines
capable of throwing grapnels in clusters. That was a stupid way to do business
against an I eighty-foot wall with veteran soldiers on top, but if they wanted
to play it that way we would accommodate them. I was confident that, no matter
how many ropes they threw up, we could cut or dislodge their lines before they
could climb that high, then, with lungs ready to fall out and arms too heavy to
lift, get busy defending their bridgehead while other equally dim types made
the same climb carrying a half ton of equipment apiece. "Goblin!"
Goddamnit, I wanted to know what that light was over there.
The
Shadowlanders had not scaled the wall there. They had attacked off of earthen
ramps. Not a surprise. They had been building the ramps from the beginning.
That was just basic siegework, employed since the dawn of time and one reason
your thoughtful modern prince builds his stronghold on a crag or headland or
island. Naturally, the besieger spans the last dozen feet with a bridge he can
yank back if a dangerous counterattack develops.
The
flareball smashed down four hundred yards out. It continued to provide light
until the southerners buried it with sand originally intended to extinguish
firebombs if we used them. "One-Eye! I'm going to have your wrinkled balls
for breakfast!"
I
snarled, "Cletus, keep throwing them fireballs. Who's got messenger duty?
Feet? Go find Goblin and One-Eye. . . . Never mind. One of them brain-damaged
runts just turned up."
One-Eye
said, "You rang, milord?"
"Are
you sober? Are you ready to get to work now?" He stared at that nasty
light across town without me coaching him. I asked, "What is that?"
The light seemed more sinister now.
One-Eye
raised a hand. "Kid, why not take this gods given opportunity to exercise
your least well-honed talent?"
"What?"
"Be
patient, dickhead."
The
mist or haze or dust started getting thicker. The light grew brighter. Neither
happening buoyed my confidence. "Talk to me, old man. This ain't the time
for any of your bullshit."
"That
haze, that ain't no mist, Murgen. The light ain't shining off it. It's making
the light." And the mist and light were drifting toward the city.
"Horse
puckey. You can see where there's a light burning in their camp."
"That's
something else. There's two things going on at once, Murgen."
"Three
things, halfwit." Goblin had arrived, beer breath and all. Presumably all
was well at the secret brewery, the arrangements with the cavalry were secure,
and he and One-Eye could take time off to help the Black Company defend
Dejagore.
Heaven
help them if Mogaba discovered what they were doing with grain supposedly set
aside for the horses. I wouldn't have a prayer of saving their butts nor would
I offer one.
"What?"
One-Eye barked. "Murgen, the man is a walking provocation."
"Watch,
bonehead," Goblin countered. "It's already happening."
One-Eye
gasped, suddenly astonished, then frightened. Ignorant in the dark arts, it
took me longer to catch it.
Shadows
snaked through that blazing dust cloud, thin things little more than
suggestions but with something flitting back and forth amongst them. I thought
both of a weaver's shuttle and of spiders. Whichever, web or net, something was
forming inside the blazing dust.
They
did call him Shadowspinner.
The
glimmering cloud grew larger and brighter. The web grew with it.
"Shit,"
Goblin muttered. "Now what do we do about this?" "Exactly what
I've been trying to get out of you two clowns for the last five minutes!"
I bellowed.
"Well!"
"Maybe
you could pay attention over here if you can't do anything about that!"
Bucket yelled. "Murgen, those fools have gotten so many ropes up that we
can't... . Shit!" Another barrage of grapnels fell amongst us. In moments
they showed the strain that meant some moron was trying to climb them.
So much
for my belief that there was no chance the southerners could scale my wall.
Guys
were hard at work with knives and swords and axes. Imaginary people stood around
looking fierce. I heard a man grumble that if he had half a brain he would have
sharpened his knives. Rudy reminded him, "If you kept your pecker in your
pants more you'd have time."
Some
Jaicuri women, naturally, inevitably, did what they had to do to survive.
Doing
my part, I hacked on ropes but kept turning to check that light and the webs
forming inside it.
Goblin
howled, creased by a nearly spent arrow. The cut, on his cheek, was trivial.
Arrows have little energy by the time they reach us. He was outraged because
fate dared show him the back of her hand at all.
He
danced around. Words of power virtually dripped from his mouth in pastel
colors. He waved his arms. He foamed at the mouth. He jumped up and down,
shrieked, flapped his arms.
His
doppelgangers all did the same. It was quite a show.
In all
likelihood the gymnastics and yelling had nothing to do with results eventually
achieved but I don't mind showmanship as long as he produces. Croaker was
right. Showmanship is the biggest part of the game.
Everything
hemp within three hundred yards burst into flame. That was a happy eventuality
where our relationship with our attackers was concerned but not something
likely to wring cries of joy from anyone else, either. Temporary defense works
began to fall apart. Our artillery pieces flared and died. They had included
lots of rope. Some guys use rope for belts. Some wear sandals made of rope.
Hemp is a commonplace everywhere. Some fools like One-Eye even smoke it.
Cletus
bellowed, "Goddamn you, Goblin, I'm gonna chop your ass into cat
food." The rest of us just pulled our pants up and amused ourselves by
dropping masonry bits mined from our cellars onto the cursing tangle of limbs
wriggling at the foot of the wall.
One-Eye
ignored all that, though he took a moment to smirk at the side effects
embarrassing Goblin. Then he began to stare at the glow rising from the enemy
camp. And began to stutter.
"Come
on, shithead," I growled. "You've played with this stuff for ages.
What have we got here?" Not that I wanted to know. That web of shadow
woven into the light was now obvious to all but the blind.
"Maybe
we might ought to head for the cellar," One-Eye suggested. "I promise
you, me and the runt ain't gonna do nothing with that. Bet you even Longshadow
would be bugeyed if he was here to see it. The man put a lot of work in,
getting that I ready. It's going to get real unhealthy around here real
soon." Without investing a quarter of the study time Goblin agreed.
"If we seal the doors and use the white candles we can hold out till
sunrise."
"This
some kind of shadow magic, then?"
"Some
kind," Goblin agreed. "Don't ask me to look so close I catch its
attention."
"Heaven
forbid you should actually take a risk. Can either of you come up with a more
practical suggestion?"
"More
practical?" One-Eye sputtered.
"We're
fighting a battle here."
Goblin
said, "We could retire from the soldiering racket. Or we could surrender.
Or we could offer to change sides."
"Maybe
we could offer up a half-pint human sacrifice to one of Geek and Freak's
bloodthirsty gods."
"You
know what I really miss about Croaker, Murgen?"
"I'm
sure you're going to tell me whether I want to hear it or not."
"Damned
straight you are. I miss his sense of humor."
"Wait
a minute. His sense of humor? Are you shitting me? What sense of humor? The man
. . ."
"He
knew none of us were going to get out of this world alive, Murgen. He never
took himself completely serious."
"Are
you talking about the guy who used to be the Old Man? Croaker? Company Annalist
and chief bonesetter in his spare time? Some kind of comedian?"
While
we bickered the rest of the world bustled along with its business. Which meant
our situation deteriorated by the minute. A human weakness, as old as time,
arguing while the house burns down around you.
One-Eye
interjected, "You gents go ahead and debate if you want. I'm going to
invite the boys downstairs, treat them to a beer and take a turn or two at
tonk." He stabbed a crooked black finger earthward.
The
gleaming dust with cruel web inside began to arc up over the city. It just
might grow enough to net us all.
A vast
stillness set in.
Inside
the city and out, friend and foe, people of a dozen races and religions all
focused upon that shadow web.
Shadowspinner,
of course, was totally involved in creating his deadly artifact.
The
Shadowlander assault lost impetus as the Shadowmaster's soldiers decided to
hunker down and let their boss make their jobs easier.
23
The web
of darkness would span all Dejagore soon. "One-Eye. Goblin. You guys have
any new ideas?"
"Get
religion?" Goblin suggested. "Since you won't let us go den up?"
One-Eye
mused, "You might amble over and see if Mogaba will change his mind about
letting us operate his engines." The Taglian crews were ineffective.
"We might be able to distract Spinner."
"You
did take shadows into account when you spelled the entrances to the
underground?" I knew. They had. That was always our biggest concern. But I
had to reassure myself. You keep checking on Goblin and One-Eye.
Small
groups were returning after long, dangerous journeys through the night,
searching for rope that had survived.
"Yeah.
For what that's worth. You ready to go down and start starving yet?"
Bad
signs followed ill omens. The situation was grim indeed if One-Eye and Goblin
could spare no time to quarrel.
A
sudden susurrus swept the city and the plain beyond.
A
blazing diamond of light rose out of the Shadowlander camp. It spun slowly. A
core of darkness centered it. From that, blackness pulsed out into the all
spanning web it anchored.
Nobody
was looking at the hills when the pinkish light returned. No one noticed until
it flared so brilliantly that it rivalled the brightness here at hand.
It
burned behind two bizarre mounted figures. It cast their hideous shadows upon
the night itself. Crow shadows circled them. Two huge ravens perched upon the
shoulders of the larger figure.
Nobody
breathed for a while. Not even Shadowspinner, I'd bet. And I was sure he had no
more idea what was happening than I did.
The
pink flare faded. A cable of pink reached toward Dejagore, like a snake
probing, stretching. As one end neared us the nether end broke loose. That whipped
our way too fast for the eye to follow and in an instant screamed into
Shadowspinner's bright diamond. Sun brilliant flash splashed out of that
sorcerous construct's far side like suddenly flung barrels of burning oil.
Immediately
the dark web overhead began to shrink back into the remnants of the diamond.
The air
vibrated with the Shadowmaster's anger. "Goblin! One-Eye! Talk to me,
boys. Tell me what the hell just happened."
Goblin
couldn't talk. One-Eye burbled, "I ain't got the faintest fucking idea,
Kid. But we're downwind of one seriously pissed-off Shadowmaster who's probably
going to blame you and me for his ulcers."
A
tremor disturbed the night, more psychic than physical. I am magically deaf and
dumb and blind, except for perceived effects, but I felt it.
One-Eye
was right.
The
pink light was gone. I saw no more sign of those bizarre riders. Who were they?
What? How?
I
didn't get a chance to ask.
Little
brown fellows carrying torches so they could see where they were running burst
out of the Shadowlander camp. That could not bode well for me, my pals, or
anyone else inside the wall.
"Poor
Spinner," I cracked. "You got to feel for the man."
"Huh?"
Sparkle was the only man close enough to hear.
"Don't
you hate it when some no-brain vandalizes a work of art?"
Sparkle
didn't get it. He shook his head, grabbed a javelin and threw it down at a
short person with a torch.
He
missed.
Around
where those Shadowlanders had gained a foothold on the wall, and on the earthen
approach ramps, a big racket began to develop. The Shadowmaster, piqued, had
told his boys to get back to work. And don't be so damned gentle anymore.
"Hey,
Bubba-do," I shouted at a soldier, "who's got tonight in the
pool?"
There
is the Black Company for you. We've got a pool on what night the city will
fall. I guess the winner gets to die with a smile on his ugly mug.
24
Goblin
and One-Eye had chosen to stay close to me. The real Goblin and One-Eye. I
checked every few minutes to make sure. Their attention was on the hills, not
the excitement across town or any of their own schemes. Strange lights moved
out there.
A band
of southerners sent out earlier returned at a gallop, half their number
missing. They flew as though devils worse than their boss were after them. They
dared ride the way they did only because Stormshadow had been obsessive when
she leveled the plain and because there was light from the city.
Fires
were burning. Only a few so far, but fires.
Sparkle
told me, "They're pulling out down below."
I
leaned over and looked. Nobody tried to pick me off. Maybe they thought I was
another ghost.
Sure
enough, the Shadowlanders were going, leaving us all those wonderful grapnels
without ropes, for us to dump on our "maybe we can use these someday"
pile.
One-Eye
said, "Guess we can put up our swords and go back to our tonk games
now."
Overlooking
the fact that Dejagore was being invaded elsewhere, I observed, "This is
the second time you've come out with that silliness. What moron is going to
play with you? Can't be anybody that dumb still alive." One-Eye cheats at
cards. And he cheats badly. He gets caught every time. Nobody will play with
him.
"Hey,
Murgen. Listen. I've reformed. Really. Never again will I dishonor my talent
to. . . ."
Why
listen? He's said it all before, countless times. The first thing we do after
we swear a recruit into the Company is warn him not to play cards with One-Eye.
A party
of Shadowlanders withdrawn from my sector headed for the hills. They all had
torches. It looked like the Shadowmaster himself might be driving them.
"Cletus!
Longinus! You guys far enough along that you can drop a barrage on that
crowd?" The brothers were repairing their engines as fast as they could.
Two were ready, cocked and loaded. Not much of a barrage. One-Eye asked,
"Why do that?"
"Why
not? We might get lucky. And can we piss off Shadowspinner more than he already
is? He's already vowed to kill us all."
The
ballistas thumped. The shafts they hurled did not hit the Shadowmaster.
Distractedly, he replied with a spear of energy that dissolved several cubic
yards of wall far from any of my guys.
The
racket from across town kept getting louder. Some seemed closer than the far
wall.
"They're
inside," Sparkle said.
"A
lot of them," Bucket agreed. "This could get to be a big cleanup
job." I liked that positive thinking.
I
shrugged. Mogaba liked to keep the cleanups for himself and the Nar and their
Taglians.
Fine
with me. Mogaba can eat all the pain he can swallow.
I
really wanted to take a nap. This long day just kept getting longer. Oh, well.
Soon enough I would get to sleep forever.
A short
while later I got word that small groups of southerners were in the streets
murdering anybody they could catch.
"Sir?"
"Sleepy.
What's up, youngster?" Sleepy was a Taglian Shadar we swore into the
Company just before I decided to take up this pen. He always looked like he was
having trouble keeping his eyes open. He also looked like he was about fourteen
years old, which was possible. He was paranoid in the extreme, apparently for
good reason. He was a good-looking youth. And pretty boys are fair game amongst
Taglian men of all three major religious groups. The Stranglers use their more attractive
sons to lure victims to their deaths.
Different
land, different customs. You may not like them but you do have to live with
them. Sleepy liked our ways better than his own.
"Sir,"
he said, "the Nar aren't trying to keep the southerners from heading this
way. They don't bother them at all anymore after they get through and off the
wall as long as they don't head into Mogaba's barracks area."
"Is
that deliberate?" Bucket asked.
Someone
muttered, "Now ask a stupid question."
"What
do you think?" One-Eye snapped. "This is the last straw. If that
bigheaded, self-important dick shows his face around here . . ."
"Save
it, One-Eye." This was hard to accept. But I could see Mogaba being
capable of channeling the enemy our way so as to resolve questions of
precedence inside the Company. His morality would allow him to picture it as a
brilliant solution to several problems. "Instead of standing around
bitching about it how about we do some thinking? Best way to fix Mogaba would
be to shove his plan up his ass, no grease."
While
the others tried to manage that difficult exercise- thinking-I questioned
Sleepy more closely. Unfortunately, he could not add much but the general
routes the southerners were using to push deeper into the city.
You
couldn't blame the Shadowlanders. Most soldiers of most times jump at the
chance to go where resistance is weakest.
Maybe
we could use that to pull some into some sort of killing pocket.
I even
got a chuckle out of my predicament. "I bet Croaker would have seen this
coming a month ago, as paranoid as he was about supposed friends and
allies."
A
nearby crow squawked agreement.
I
should have considered the possibility. I really should have. Farfetched is not
the same as impossible. I should have had something planned.
One-Eye
became as serious as ever he gets. "You know what this means? If the kid
is right?"
"The
Company is at war with itself?"
The
little guy waved that off like it was just another annoying gnat of reality.
"Suppose Mogaba is giving them a golden bridge so they can get rid of us
for him? They still have to get through the pilgrims to reach us."
I
didn't need to think long to see what he meant. "That asshole. He going to
make them kill Shadowlanders in self-defense. He's going to use them up killing
his enemies for him."
"Maybe
he's a bigger snake than anybody thought," Bucket growled. "It's for
sure he's changed a lot since Gea-Xle."
"This
ain't right," I muttered, although swords would enter the fight on our
side whether or not they wanted to. Other than a few small skirmishes with lost
invaders during past attacks the worst that had happened to the Nyueng Bao was
that their pilgrimage had gotten them trapped in the middle of somebody else's
war. From the first clash of steel they had worked hard to maintain their
neutrality.
Shadowspinner
has his spies in the city. He would know the Nyueng Bao had no interest in
antagonizing him.
"What
do you think they'll do?" Goblin asked. "The Nyueng Bao, I
mean." His voice sounded odd. How much beer had he put away?
"How
the hell would I know? Depends on how they see things. If they think Mogaba
dragged them into it on purpose it might get unhealthy to belong to the
Company. Mogaba could see this as a chance to squish us into a crack between a
rock and a hard place. I'd better go see their Speaker and let him know what's
happening. Bucket. Make up a twenty man patrol and go looking for southerners.
See if Sleepy is right. One'Eye, go with him. Spot for him and cover our guys.
Sparkle, you watch things here. Send Sleepy after me if it gets too much to
handle."
Nobody
argued. When things get tight the guys do become less fractious.
I
descended the stairway to the street.
25
I
played the game the way I thought the Nyueng Bao would want. Ever since
childhood I have suspected you get along better if you respect people's ways
and wishes regardless of your apparent relative strengths.
That
doesn't mean you let people walk on you. It doesn't mean you eat their pain for
them. You need to demand respect for yourself, too.
Dejagore's
byways are close and fetid. Typical of a fortified city. I went to an obscure
intersection where under normal circumstances I could expect to be seen by
Nyueng Bao watchers. They are a cautious people. They watch all the time. I
announced, "I would see the Speaker. Harm is headed his way. I would have
him know what I know."
I
didn't see anybody. I didn't hear anybody. I expected nothing else. Someone who
strolled into my territory would see and hear nothing, either, but death would
be nearby.
The
only sounds came from fighting several blocks away.
I
waited.
Suddenly,
in that instant when my attention finally wandered, Ky Dam's son materialized.
He made no more noise than a tiptoeing moth. He was a wide, short man of
indeterminate age. He carried an unusually long sword but it remained sheathed
across his back. He stared at me hard. I stared back. It cost me nothing. He
grunted, indicated that I should follow. We walked no more than eighty yards.
He indicated a doorway. "Keep smiling," I told him. I couldn't
resist. He was always around somewhere, watching. I never saw him smile. I
pushed the door inward.
Curtains
hung two feet inside. Very weak light slipped through a rent. I closed the door
carefully once I understood that I would be entering alone, before I parted the
curtains. Wouldn't do to let light splash into the street.
The
place turned out to be about as pleasant as you can get in a city.
The
Speaker sat on a mat on a dirty floor near the one candle offering light. There
were about a dozen people visible, of all ages and sexes. I saw four children,
all small, six adults of an age to be their parents, and one old woman of
granny age who glowered like she had a special bunk in Hell reserved for me
even though she'd never seen me before. I saw nobody who could pass as her
husband. Maybe he was the guy outside. Then there was a woman as old as Ky Dam,
a fragile flower time-diminished to little more than skin-covered sticks,
though an agile intelligence still burned in her eyes. You would get nothing
past this woman.
Of
material things I saw little but the clothing the people wore, a few ragged
blankets, a couple of clay cups and a pot maybe used for cooking. And more
swords nearly as long and fine as that carried by the Speaker's son.
In the
darkness beyond the candlelight someone groaned. It was the sound of someone
delirious.
"Sit,"
Ky Dam invited. A second mat lay unrolled beside the candle. In the weak light
the old man seemed more frail than when he visited the wall.
I sat.
Though I wasn't used to it and my tendons weren't supple enough, I tried to
cross my legs.
I
waited.
Ky Dam
would invite me to speak when it was time.
I tried
to concentrate on the old man, not the people staring at me, nor the smell of
too many folks living in too small a space, of their strange foods, nor even
the odor of sickness.
A woman
brought tea. How she made it I don't know. I never saw any fire. I didn't think
about that at the moment, though, so startled was I. She was beautiful. Even in
dirt and rags, incredibly beautiful. I brought the hot tea to my lips and
scalded them to shock myself back to business.
I felt
sorrow instantly. This one would pay dearly when the southerners took the town.
A small
smile touched Ky Dam's lips. I noticed amusement on the face of the old woman,
too, and recognized there a similar beauty only externally betrayed by time.
They were used to my initial reaction. Maybe it was some kind of test, bringing
her out of the shadows. Almost too softly to be heard, the old man said,
"She is indeed." Louder, he added, "You are wise beyond your
years, Soldier of Darkness."
What
was this Soldier of Darkness crap? Every time he addressed me he stuck me with
another name.
I tried
a formal head bow of acknowledgment. "Thank you for that compliment,
Speaker." I hoped he would realize that I was incapable of keeping up with
the subtleties of proper manners amongst the Nyueng Bao.
"I
sense in you a great anxiety held in check only by chains of will." He
sipped tea calmly but eyed me in a way that told me hastiness would be
tolerated if I thought it really necessary.
I said,
"Great evils stalk the night, Speaker. Unexpected monsters have slipped
their leashes."
"So
I surmised when you were kind enough to permit me atop your section of
wall."
"There
is a new beast loose. One I never expected to see." In retrospect I
realize we were speaking of two different things. "One I do not know how
to handle." I strove to keep my Taglian pronunciations clear. Men
conversing in a tongue native to neither sorely tempt the devils of
misunderstanding.
He
seemed puzzled. "I do not understand you."
I
glanced around. Did all his people live like this all the time? They were
packed in way tighter than we were. Of course, we could enforce our claims to
space with our swords. "Do you know about the Black Company? Do you know
our recent history?" Rather than await an answer I sketched our immediate
past. Ky Dam was one of those rare people who listened with every ounce of his
being.
I
finished. The old man said, "Time has, perhaps, made of you shadows of the
Soldiers of Darkness. You have been gone so long and have journeyed so far that
you have strayed from your Way completely. Nor are the followers of the warrior
prince Mogaba hewing any nearer the true path."
I did
not hide my thoughts well, Ky Dam and his woman found me amusing again.
"But I am not one of you, Standardbearer. My knowledge has drifted far
from the truth as well. Perhaps there is no real truth today because there is
no one who knows it anymore."
I
didn't have a clue what the hell he was talking about. "You have wandered
long and far, Standardbearer. But you may yet come home again." His
expression darkened momentarily. "Though you wish that you had not. Where
is your standard, Standardbearer?"
"I
don't know. It vanished during the big battle on the plain outside. I jammed
its butt into the earth when I decided to put on my Captain's armor in order to
pretend that he had not fallen, so the troops would rally, but. . . ."
The old
man raised a hand. "I think it may be very close tonight."
I hate
this obscurity crap old people and wizards like to perpetrate. I am convinced
that they do it only because it gives them a feeling of power. Screw the
missing standard. It was not germane, now, tonight. I said, "The Nar
chieftain wants to be Captain of the Black Company. He does not approve of the
ways of those of us from the far north."
I
paused but the old man had dried up. He waited. I said, "Mogaba is
flawless as a warrior but he has shortcomings in some areas of
leadership."
Ky Dam
then proved to be less than the totally inscrutable and eternally patient
old-timer you are led to expect in these situations.
"You
came to warn me that he has chosen to lessen his problems by letting
southerners do his knifework, Standardbearer?" "Huh?"
"One
of my grandsons was in a position to overhear while Mogaba debated tonight's
actions with his lieutenants Ochiba, Sindawe, Ranjalpirindi and Chal Ghanda
Ghan. Because Taglian conspirators were present the Nar failed to squabble in
their native tongue though Mogaba showed limited facility with the
Taglian." "Excuse me? Sir?"
"What
your honor compels you to report to me, although you only harbor suspicions
now, is far worse than you fear. Overruling strong objections by his Nar
lieutenants, Mogaba set forth a plan for tonight which will allow southerners
who reach the ramparts and do not dally there to have their ways behind the
wall. Taglian legionnaires will discourage them from attacking any direction
but through our quarter into yours."
"You
knew already? That what you're saying? Before I got here you had an actual
witness?"
"Thai
Dei."
A young
man rose. He was an unpleasant-looking skinny little guy who held a toddler in
his arms.
Ky Dam
said, "He does not speak Taglian well but he understands it good enough.
He overheard the plot being hatched. He overheard the arguments of those who
found it dishonorable. He saw an angry Mogaba go so far as to continue during
the visit of a man believed to be an instrument of the Shadowmasters."
That
hit me. It meant that, as of that moment, there existed a tacit agreement
between Mogaba and Shadowspinner good until me and mine had been obliterated.
"This is cruel treachery indeed, Speaker." Ky Dam nodded. Then he
told me, "There is more, Stone Soldier. Both Ranjalpirindi and Ghanda Ghan
are intimates of the Prahbrindrah Drah. Speaking with the Prince's voice they
assured Mogaba that, once the siege has been broken and your band has been
eliminated, the Prince will announce his personal support of Mogaba's captaincy
of your company. In exchange Mogaba will abandon your previous Captain's quest
to become chief warlord of Taglios. With all powers necessary to prosecute the
war against the Shadowlands."
"Man,
that was some job of eavesdropping." Thai Dei almost smiled.
"And
some job of treachery put together by Brother Mogaba."
I could
see why Ochiba and Sindawe would argue against it. It was a betrayal almost
beyond comprehension.
Mogaba
had, indeed, gone through some dark changes since Gea-Xle.
I
asked, "What does he have against you people?" "Nothing,
Politically he should be indifferent to us. We have never been a factor in
Taglian affairs. But we mean nothing to him in any other way, either. He is
eager to spend us like found coin. If the southerners attack you after fighting
his forces, then us, huge numbers of his enemies and us resource gulping
undesirables will have been eliminated."
"Once
I admired this man greatly, Speaker."
"Men
change, Standardbearer. And this one more than most. He is an actor and but one
wicked purpose impels all his acting."
"Speaker?"
"This
Mogaba is the center of, and the reason for, everything that Mogaba does.
Mogaba will sacrifice his best friend upon an altar to himself, though probably
not even a god could convince the friend that that possibility exists. Mogaba's
every wicked order draws another veil off the black blotch devouring his soul.
He has changed as the most perfect pomegranate will change when the mold gets
inside its skin."
Here we
go, talking old-timer sideways again.
"Standardbearer!
Though I know of the black danger to my people already I am honored that you
believed us worthy of a warning, however pressing your other concerns. That was
an act of generosity and friendship. We do not forget those who have extended
their hands."
"Thank
you. I am pleased by your response." You'd better believe. "And if
Mogaba allows you to be attacked . . ."
"The
problem is upon us already, Stone Soldier. Southerners are dying right now,
only yards away. Once it became evident that we were trapped here we all
learned every nuance of the ground upon which we might fight. This is not our
swamp but the principles of battle remain the same. We have been prepared for
this night for many weeks. It remained to be seen only who would chose to
become our enemy."
"Huh?"
I could be stupid as a stone when I ran into something cold.
"You
should rejoin those who look to you for leadership. Do so secure in the
knowledge that you have the friendship of the Nyueng Bao."
"An
honor."
"Or
curse." The old man chuckled.
"Does
that mean your people will actually talk to mine?"
"That
might be a little too much." He chuckled again. His wife smiled, too. What
a wild joker he was! The man was a laugh riot. He said, "Thai Dei. Go with
this man. You may speak if spoken to, but only as my mouth. Bone Warrior. This
is my grandson. He will understand you. Send him to me if you have a need to
communicate. Do not be frivolous."
"I
understand." I tried to get up, embarrassed myself by failing to get my
legs untangled. One of the kids laughed. I dared glance around for a reaction
from the dream woman who brought the tea, sure I was not fooling Ky Dam. A baby
slept in her lap. A toddler dozed under her left arm. She was awake, watching.
She looked tired, frightened, confused and determined. About like the rest of
us. Whenever that moaning came Tom the darkness she winced and looked that way.
The pain was a part of her.
I bowed
myself out. The Nyueng Bao Thai Dei led me back to familiar territory.
26
I don't
know," I told Goblin when he asked about my Nyueng Bao shadow. "He
don't talk much." I had not gotten a word out of him yet. "His
all-purpose vocabulary seems to be the noncommittal grunt. Anyway, the visit
wasn't necessary. The Nyueng Bao know more about the coming shit rain than we
do. The old man admits it's all Mogaba's fault and says we're off the
hook."
Goblin
made as though to look over his shoulder like he was trying to check his own
behind.
"Yeah,"
I agreed. "Strap on your chastity belt. What's happening?" I didn't see
Bucket or Sparkle.
"Not
much yet. Spinner and his bunch just got to the hills."
And all
kinds of excitement broke out out there. A strong pink light cast silhouettes
on the night again. Goblin said, "They look exactly like the Lifetaker and
Widowmaker costumes Lady made for her and Croaker. Hey! How come you look like
you got bit on the ass by a ghost?"
"Because
maybe I did. They do look exactly like what you say. Only if you remember I
took the Widowmaker armor off Croaker after that arrow got him. I put it on and
pretended to be him. And failed because I started too late."
"So?"
"So
last week somebody stole the Widowmaker armor. Right out of my quarters while I
was laying there asleep. I thought I had it hidden where nobody but me could ever
find it. But somebody came in, stepped over me, got it dug out, and got out of
there with the load and I never saw or heard a thing. And neither did anybody
else." And that was definitely scary.
"Is
that why you were asking all those weird questions the other day?" Goblin
squeaked. He could sound like a stomped mouse when he was distressed.
"Yeah."
"How
come you never said anything?"
"Because
whoever took the armor had to use sorcery to get past me. I figured it was one
of you guys and I wanted to find out which one so I could cut him off at the
ankles before he knew it was coming."
One-Eye
came puffing up the stairs. Not bad for a guy two hundred years old. "What
gives? How come the grim faces?"
Goblin
filled him in.
The
little black wizard grumped, "You should have told us, Murgen. We might
have picked up a hot trail."
Not
likely. The only evidence I had found was one small white feather and a glob of
what looked like bird shit. "It don't matter now. I know where the armor
is. Out there." I pointed at the hills, which lay beneath what looked like
a premature pink dawn. "What did you do?"
"We
killed off a bunch of goddamned southerners, that's what we did. Mogaba must be
selling them tickets over there. The little suckers are thicker than lice.
Anyway, we got out before we used up our luck. Them Nyueng Bao are really going
bug fuck." He gave Thai Dei the fish-eye. "Looks like they're trying
to make the Shadowlanders want to go chomp on Mogaba's rear. Serve the asshole
right, he gets ate up by his own plot. What the hell is going on out
there?" He meant the pink-soaked hills.
Goblin
replied, "That's something we weren't looking for."
A gout
of darkness reared against the pink. Human figures tumbled within it. They
flared, burned like bright, brief-lived stars. Moments later an earth tremor
rocked the city. I lost my footing briefly.
One-Eye
observed, "For once you're right, runt. There's a player in the game we
didn't know about."
A pair
of crows a few yards off went into hysterics. They jumped into the darkness,
kept laughing as they flapped away.
"Surprise,
surprise," I muttered. "What with all that booming and crashing and
crap in those hills. Come on, guys! Tell me who. The rest even a dummy like me
can figure out. So just tell me who."
"We're
gonna work on that," One-Eye promised. "Maybe we'd even start now if
you went away and left us alone. Come on, runt."
While
him and his frog-faced buddy got to work I turned my attention to the
excitement still festering inside Dejagore.
Possibly
thousands of Shadowlanders had crossed the wall now. A lot of fires were
burning. I asked Ky Dam's grandson, "Will the light be trouble for your
people?"
He
shrugged.
This
fellow was no gossip.
27
There
was no night now. Fires burned everywhere. They burned in the Shadowlander
camp, set by Mogaba's beleaguered artillerymen. They burned in the city, set by
the Shadowmaster's soldiers. Conflagrations blazed in the hills, hinting of
surprise volcanos or powers of a magnitude unseen since the Company went up
against the dark lords of Lady's empire. It was too much light for the middle
of the night. "How long till dawn? Anybody know?"
"Too
long," Bucket grumbled. "You really think anybody is actually
worrying about keeping time tonight?"
Way
back, centuries earlier in the evening, One-Eye or Goblin or somebody expressed
dawn as a goal too remote for hope. The general level of optimism remained that
low.
Reports
came in, none of them good. Innumerable southern soldiers were inside the city.
They had orders to drive toward us, wipe us out, then continue on around inside
and atop the wall, the long way, till they got back where they had started. But
the Nyueng Bao were not cooperating. Neither were my guys. So the invaders were
blundering around doing any damage they could till somebody killed them.
Against
the Jaicuri, cowering in their homes hoping to be overlooked despite all their
experience with the Shadowmasters, the southerners enjoyed some success.
You
could not fault them for not going all out after us. They did not want to get
killed either. And Mogaba should not have been surprised when some of the
villains he let through turned on him.
Our
guys held their positions. The doppelgangers and illusions drove the
southerners crazy. They never knew which threat was real. But the big reason
our side held up well was that there was no choice. We had nowhere to run.
Shadowspinner
was no help to his people. He was out in those hills intent on undoing that
mystery personally. Clearly he regretted having made the choice.
Once
again a band of riders came flying back, silhouetted by pink light. The
Shadowmaster did not appear to be with them. "Goblin! One-Eye! Where the
hell are you now, you little shits? Has something happened to
Shadowspinner?"
Goblin
materialized, his breath heavy with the smell of beer. He and One-Eye had a few
gallons stashed somewhere nearby, then. He dashed my hopes. "The
Shadowmaster is alive, Murgen. But maybe he's messed his drawers." He
giggled.
"Oh,
shit," I muttered. The little toad had gotten deep into the home brew. If
One-Eye had, too, I might have one truly interesting rest of the night. It was
possible those two would forget everything and pick up the feud they have had
going for a I hundred years. Last time they got drunk and went after each other
they tore up a whole city block in Taglios.
All the
while the Speaker's grandson hung back in the shadows and watched like one of
those goddamned crows. There were a lot more of those around now.
Old
Wheezer came puffing up from the street. He had to take a break before he got
to the top. He hacked and coughed and spat blood. He was from the same part of
the world as One-Eye. They have nothing else in common except a taste for beer.
Wheezer had been to the barrel a few times, too. He came on up top as I
surveyed the city and tried to guess how bad things really were. We were
getting very little pressure right then.
Wheezer
hacked and wheezed and spat. A new generation of pink lights erupted at the
feet of the hills. They cast two shadows against the sky. There was no doubt
they were shadows of Widowmaker and Lifetaker, the dread alter egos Lady
created for herself and Croaker so they could scare shit out of Shadowlanders.
"This
isn't possible," I told my tame wizards. One-Eye was back. He used one
hand to support Wheezer, who seemed to be suffering an asthma attack along with
the effects of his tuberculosis. In his other hand One-Eye clutched something
polelike wrapped in rags. I continued, "That can't be Croaker and Lady
because I saw them go down with my own eyes."
A
handful of horsemen drifted toward town. Among them was a blob of darkness that
had to be Shadowspinner. He was staying busy. Pink fireflies swarmed around
him. He had trouble fending them off.
As
though they realized their boss would be in a foul temper when he got back, the
southerners' attack suddenly picked up.
"I'm
not sure," Goblin mused. He sounded like he had been scared sober. "I
can't get any sense of the one in the Lifetaker armor. There's a shitload of
power there, though."
"Lady
had no power left," I reminded him.
"The
other one does feel like Croaker."
Couldn't
be.
Wheezer
finally gasped, "Mogaba . . ."
Several
men spat at mention of the name. Everybody had an opinion about our fearless
war chief. Listening to them you might have concluded that Mogaba was the most
lusted after man in town.
A
writhing pink thread reached for Shadowspinner's party. The Shadowmaster batted
it away from himself but it slew half his party. Parts of bodies flew in all
directions.
"Shee-it!"
somebody said, pretty much capturing the popular feeling.
Wheezer
barked, "Mogaba wants to
know if we can free up a few hundred
men to counterattack the enemy who are inside the city."
"How
stupid does that bastard think we are?" Sparkle grumbled.
Goblin
asked, "Don't that camel's wife know we're on to him?"
"Why
should he think we might suspect him? He's got such a tall opinion of his own
brain. . . ."
"I
think it's funny," Bucket crowed. "He tried to screw us and only
ended up with his own ass in a sling. Even better, maybe the only way he can
pry it out is to have us do it for him."
I asked
Goblin, "What's One-Eye up to?" One-Eye looked like he was praying
over one of the ballistas with Loftus. Rags lay scattered around their feet. A
gruesome black spear lay in the engine's trough.
"I
don't know."
I
checked the nearest gate. The Nar there could see us. Mogaba would know I was
lying if I claimed we were too beat up to send help. I asked, "Anybody
think of a reason we should help Mogaba?" To hold my sector, besides the
Old Crew itself, I had six hundred Taglian survivors from Lady's division and
an uncertain and changeable number of liberated slaves, former prisoners of war
and ambitious Jaicuri.
Everyone
replied in the negative. Nobody wanted to help Mogaba. As I approached the
engines I asked, "How about if we do it just to save our own butts? If we
let Mogaba get stomped we could end up facing the rest of the Shadowlander mob
by ourselves." I glanced at the gate. "And those people over there
can see everything we do."
Goblin
looked, too. He shook his head to lessen the beer buzz. "We'll have to
think about that."
"What
are you doing, One-Eye?" I was beside him now. One-Eye indicated the spear
proudly. "Little something I've been working on in my spare time."
"It's
ugly enough." Nice to know he could do something useful without being
told.
He had
begun with a black wooden pole and had worked it for a lot of hours. It was
covered with incredibly ugly miniature scenes along with writing in an
unfamiliar alphabet. Its head was as black as its shaft, darkened iron finely
traced with silver runes. There was some color on the shaft, too, although so
fine as to be almost invisible. "Very nice."
"Nice?
Sigh. You heathen." He pointed. Loftus looked. So did I.
Shadowspinner's
party, sadly depleted, surrounded by swarms of pink sparkles and mocking crows,
was getting close.
One-Eye
snickered. "This here is my Shadowmaster blaster, bastar'!" He
howled. He must have put away a lot of that beer. "Nothing he couldn't
stop on a lazy afternoon, but this ain't no lazy afternoon, is it? Loftus
shoots, this stick won't be in the air five seconds. That's all the time he'll
have to figure out what's coming and what to do to unravel the spells that are
there to keep him from turning it. And look how busy that asshole is already.
Loftus, my man, get ready to carve you a big victory notch on this thing."
As
anybody with any sense does, Loftus ignored One-Eye. He laid his weapon with an
artist's care.
One-Eye
babbled, "Most of the spells are designed to penetrate his personal
protection, counting on him not having time to do anything actively. Because I
wanted to concentrate on piercing one point in a passive . . ."
I shut
him out. "Goblin. Any chance this will work? The runt's not exactly a
heavyweight."
"It's
workable, tactically. If he really worked that hard on it. Say One-Eye is an
order of magnitude weaker than Shadowspinner. That really only means that it
takes him ten times as long to get the same work done."
"An
order of magnitude?" So that was One-Eye's problem.
"More
like two orders really, probably."
He lost
me. And I didn't have time to wring an explanation out of him.
Loftus
was satisfied he was leading his target perfectly, he had the range, whatever.
"Time," he said.
28
Loose,"
I suggested. The ballista offered its distinctive thump. Silence spread along
the wall. The black shaft darted across the night. The occasional spark floated
behind it. One-Eye said five seconds of flight. The truth was more like four
but they took forever.
There
was ample firelight to illuminate the Shadowmaster. Shortly he would disappear
behind one of the enfilading towers. He stared back at the hills as he rode.
Those bizarre riders out there were on the plain now, daring someone, anyone,
to answer their challenge.
I
gasped.
Widowmaker
carried the Lance. The standard itself was not apparent but that was the lance
on which it had ridden from the day the Black Company left Khatovar. Every
single Annalist has kept close track although the reason for doing so has been
forgotten. I focused on Shadowspinner in time to see One-Eye's treasure arrive.
Later
Goblin told me Spinner sensed the threat as the missile hit the peak of its
arc. Whatever he did then, it was the right thing. Or he was lucky. Or a higher
power decreed that this was not his night to die.
The
spear changed course by scant inches. Instead of striking Shadowspinner it hit
his mount's shoulder. And ripped through the beast as though it was no more
substantial than air. The wound glowed red, flickered. The red spread.
Shadowspinner bellowed in rage as the animal threw him. He fell in a heap, lay
there twitching long enough for One-Eye to start nagging Loftus about hitting
him with a barrage of regular shafts, then he scuttled off like a crab to
escape the stallion's pounding hooves.
I
recognized that animal then. It was one of those magically bred monster horses
Lady brought south with the Company, out of her old empire. They vanished
during the battle.
The
horse screamed and screamed.
A
normal animal would have perished in moments.
I
stared at those two riders out there. They walked toward the city slowly,
offering their challenge. Now I could see that they, too, were mounted on
Lady's stallions. I told Goblin, "But I saw them killed."
One-Eye
grumbled, "We got to check this boy's eyes."
Goblin
said, "I told you before, that's not Lady. You look real close, you can
see differences in the armor."
The
troops were seeing that. There was a stir among the Taglians.
"And
you don't know about the other one? What're they talking about over
there?"
"No.
It could be the Old Man."
Sparkle
went to see why the Taglians were excited.
Shadowspinner's
horse collapsed but continued screaming and kicking. Wisps of greenish steam
rose from its wound. That continued to grow. The beast's death was a long time
coming.
The
sorcerer would have died more slowly and gruesomely still had One-Eye's shaft
struck home.
Sparkle
came to say, "They're all excited because that armor is an exact match for
some goddess named Kina in her battle avatar. That's the way she's always
portrayed in paintings about her war with the demons."
I had
no idea what he was talking about, only that Kina was some sort of death
goddess in these parts.
I
wondered when the Shadowmaster would snipe back at One-Eye.
"He
won't," Goblin assured me. "The moment he gave it attention enough to
be effective those two out there would cut his legs off."
I
watched Shadowspinner limp out of sight.
His
embarrassment spurred his soldiers to increase their efforts again. Somebody
would pay for his indignity in pain. Understandably they preferred that we pick
up that tab.
Some of
them seemed to recognize the Lifetaker armor, too. I heard the name Kina
shouted more than once below the wall.
"Thai
Dei. Time for a message to your grandfather. I want to bring part of my force
through his area so I can help drive the southerners out of the city."
The
Nyueng Bao stepped out of the shadows just long enough to listen. He stared at
those riders, troubled. Then he grunted, descended to the street and trotted
off into the night.
"Listen
up, people. We're going to go save our fearless dick-head leader. Bucket. .
."
29
I
stepped into a dark alleyway, planning to set up shop behind a southern company
with Goblin to do his hoodoo on them. And it was like I stepped off the edge of
the world, into an abyss without bottom. Like some great psychic flyswatter
slapped me down into the void. Goblin barked something in the instant it took
to go but I did not understand him.
I had
that moment to feel seasick, to be bewildered, to wonder who had ambushed me
with what sorcery, and why it seemed to twist me like a wet rag being wrung
out.
Had
Mogaba taken his treachery to another level?
30
Something
had hold of me. It pulled so virulently there was no resisting it. I lost track
of who I was and where. I knew only that I was asleep and did not want to wake
up.
"Murgen!"
a far voice called. The pull strengthened. Murgen, come on! Come home! Fight
it, Kid! Fight it!" I fought.
But it
was that voice I fought. It wanted me to come somewhere that much of me did not
want to go. Pain awaited me there.
The
pull redoubled as the force dragged at me with inescapable power.
"That
did it!" somebody shouted. "We have him back now."
I knew
that voice. . . .
It was
like coming out of a coma except that I remembered where I had been in every
detail. Dejagore. Every little ache, every horror, every fear. But already the
sharp edges were going dull. The ties were slipping. I was here now.
Here?
Which when and where was here? I tried opening my eyes. My lips would not
respond. I tried to move. My limbs refused to be troubled.
"He's
all here."
"Pull
that curtain." I heard heavy cloth being moved. "Will it keep getting
harder? I thought we were supposed to be over the worst. That he couldn't
recede so far that we would have this much trouble bringing him home."
Oh!
That voice belonged to Croaker. The Old Man. Only the Old Man is dead, because
I saw him killed. Or did I? Didn't I just leave Widowmaker, alive long past his
time?
"Well,
he didn't listen. But it can't do anything but get better now. We're around the
corner. Over the hump. Unless he wants to stay lost."
I got
an eye open.
I was
in a dark place. I'd never seen it before but it had to be in the Palace at
Trogo Taglios. Home. Never have I seen that kind of stone used anywhere else.
And there was nothing astonishing about not being able to recognize parts of
the Palace. The princes of Taglios all add on a bit during their reigns.
Supposedly only the old royal wizard Smoke ever knew his way around the whole
place. And Smoke isn't with us anymore. I don't know what happened to him
afterward but several years ago he got torn up when a supernatural creature he
disagreed with tried to eat him. Handy, because about then was when we
discovered that he had been seduced by Longshadow and had gone over to the
Shadowmasters.
I was
amazed at me. Although I had a headache like the mother of all hangovers my
mind, suddenly, was crystal clear. "He's got an eye open, chief."
"Can you hear me, Murgen?" I tried my tongue, blurted fluent
gibberish. "You had another one of your spells. We've been trying to bring
you back for two days." Croaker sounded put out. Like I was
inconveniencing him on purpose? "All right. You know the drill. Let's get
him up and walking."
I
remembered doing this part several times before. I was less confused now, more
able to grasp quickly the distinction between past and present.
They
got my feet under me. Goblin got under my right armpit. Croaker wrapped his arm
around me from the left, lifted. I said, "I remember what to do."
They
did not understand. Goblin asked, "You got a grip on when you are, Murgen?
Ain't going to drift off into the past on us again?"
I
nodded. I could communicate that way. Maybe I could use the deaf and dumb
speech.
"Dejagore
again?" Croaker asked.
I had
the connections all made inside. Even plenty I didn't want made. I tried
talking again. "Same night. Again. Later on."
"Set
him down. He'll be all right now," Croaker said. "Murgen. You get any
clues this time? Anything we can latch onto to break you out of this cycle? I
need you here. I need you full time."
"Not
one damned thing." I paused to catch my breath. I was adapting faster this
time. "I don't even know when it hit me. I was just there, suddenly, like
a poltergeist or something, with no thoughts of any future at all. Then after a
while I was just Murgen with no awareness, no anomalies like I get now."
"Anomalies?"
Startled,
I turned. One-Eye had materialized from somewhere. I saw that curtain still
stirring. It closed off half the room.
"Huh?"
"What
do you mean by anomalies?"
When I
concentrated I really didn't know what I meant. I shook my head. "I don't
know. It's gotten away from me. When am I?"
Croaker
and the wizards dealt a hand of significant looks between them. Croaker asked,
"Do you remember the Grove of Doom?"
"Sure.
I'm still shivering." A chill did touch me. Then I recalled the key thing.
I had no memories of having visited this room before but I should have had
them. Because I was still in my yesterdays. I just wasn't as far away as I had
been at Dejagore, which was years ago.
Then I
tried to remember the future.
I
remembered too much. I whimpered.
"Do
we need to get him up again?" Goblin asked.
I shook
my head. "I'm solid. Let's think. How long between this spell and the last
one? How long since we got back from the grove?"
Croaker
said, "You got back three days ago. I told you to bring your prisoners to
the Palace. You tried. You lost the shadowweaver along the way, in
circumstances so questionable I issued orders for all Company people to stay
especially alert."
"He
was old. He just died of fright," One-Eye said. "Ain't nothing
mysterious about that."
My
headache was not improving. I had vague recollections of those events but they
were not as clear as my memories of other events immediately before previous
seizures. "I don't recall much of it."
"The
red-hand Deceiver got here all right. We meant to start questioning him that
night. But you went back to your apartment, supposedly just walked through the
doorway and collapsed. Your mother-in-law, uncle, wife and brother-in-law all
agree. Probably the first, last and only time that will happen."
"Probably.
The old lady is like One-Eye. She disagrees just to be disagreeable."
"Hey!
Kid. . . ."
"Quiet,"
Croaker told him. "So you just fell down and went rigid. Your wife got
hysterical. Your brother-in-law came for me. We took you out of there to ease
the stress on your family."
Ease
the stress? Those people never heard of the word. Besides, Sarie was the only
one of them I considered family.
Goblin
said, "Open your mouth, Murgen." He turned my face to the best light
and stared down my throat. "No damage in here."
I knew
what they thought. Epilepsy. I had considered that myself. I had asked about it
of anyone who would listen. But no epileptic I ever heard of got bounced into
the past from a seizure. Into a past that was never exactly like the past I had
lived already.
"I
told you it isn't a disease," Croaker growled. "When you find the
answer it will be right there inside your own field and you'll probably feel
stupid about not having seen it earlier."
"If
there's anything to be found we'll find it," One-Eye promised. Which left
me wondering what he had up his sleeve. Then I knew that I had to know already
because they were going to tell me pretty soon. But I could not recall that
future clearly enough to grasp it.
Sometimes
it was spooky being me.
"Was
that headless character there again?" Croaker asked.
After
figuring out what he meant I said, "Yes. But he was faceless, boss. Not
headless. He had a head."
"Might
represent the source of the problem," One-Eye suggested. "You ever
remember any features, anything at all, tell somebody. Or get it written down
right away."
Croaker
told me, "I don't want this to happen to anybody else. Can you imagine
managing a campaign when your people can fade out on you any minute, for days
at a time?"
I felt
confident that that would not happen. But I didn't say so because they would
press me on it and I did not feel like being poked and prodded. "I need
something for a headache. Please. A hangover kind of headache."
"Did
you have this headache the other times?" Croaker demanded. "You never
mentioned it."
"It
was there but not this bad. Just a minor discomfort. A four-beer hangover kind
of headache, if it was beer brewed by Willow Swan and Cordy Mather. That mean
anything?"
Croaker
smiled at the reference to the world's second worst beer. "Between me and
Goblin we watched you almost every minute since you got back from the Grove of
Doom. It seemed likely that this would keep happening. I didn't want us to miss
anything."
And
that keyed a serious question. Since while I am in this time I can remember the
future occasionally how come I never remember the trips to the past that I am
going to make?
And how
could they watch me that closely? I never noticed them. And I try to stay
alert. You never know when a Deceiver might pop out of a shadow swinging his
strangling scarf.
"So
what did you get?"
"We
didn't see a thing."
"I
am on the job now, though," One-Eye said, preening.
"Now
that really inspires me with confidence."
"Everybody's
got to be a wiseass anymore," One-Eye complained. "I remember when
young people respected their elders."
"That
was in the days when they didn't get a chance to know the old folks very
well."
"I
have work to do," Croaker said. "One-Eye, stick with Murgen when you
can. Keep talking about Dejagore and what's been happening to him. There'll be
clues there somewhere. Maybe we don't recognize them yet. If we keep at it
something will pop." He left before I could say anything.
Something
had passed between Croaker and One-Eye about and beyond me. And maybe we all
had cause to be concerned. This time I could not remember much about where I
was. Things seemed to be new, first time, yet some shaking, terrified
I
little creature way back in the night warrens of my mind insisted I was still
reliving yesterdays and the worst of those were yet to come.
One-Eye
said, "I think we'll just take you home now, Kid.
Your
wife will have the cure for what ails you."
She
might. She was a miracle. Even One-Eye, who seems incapable of offering respect
to anyone, treated her and spoke to and of her, as though he considered her an
honored lady.
She is,
of course. But it is nice to have others confirm that.
"Now
that's the first thing you've said that I wanted to hear. Lead on,
brother." I didn't know the way.
I cast
a backward glance at Smoke and the covered Deceiver. What in the hell?
31
My
in-laws make very little effort to improve anyone's opinion of Nyueng Bao.
Mother Gota, in particular, is a major pain in the ass. The old battleaxe
barely tolerates even me and that only because the alternative is to lose her
daughter entirely. She is very nasty toward the Old Man.
Still,
Sarie and I rated enough for Croaker to insist we swap quarters when her folks
showed up last month, in town slumming from their glamorous swamps. But they
won't make it back to paradise if Mother Gota doesn't control her lip in the
street.
The Old
Man never reacts to her constant complaints. He told me, "I've had thirty
years of Goblin and One-Eye. One crabby old woman hurting from gout and
arthritis is nothing. You did say she's only here for a few weeks, didn't
you?"
Right.
I did say that. I wondered how those words would taste with soy sauce. Or maybe
a lot of curry.
Now
that Lady is in the south most of the time, emptying her cornucopia of rage
onto the Shadowlands, Croaker has no need for a large apartment. Our old space
was little more than a monk's cell. There is just room enough for him, Lady
when she visits, and a cradle that was given to Lady by a man named Ram who
later died trying to protect her and her baby from Narayan Singh. Ram made that
cradle himself. Most likely he died because, like almost every man who spends
much time around Lady, he fell for the wrong woman.
Croaker
gave me his apartment, all right, but it came with limitations. I could not
turn it into the new home of the Nyueng Bao. Sahra and Thai Dei belonged.
Mother Gota and Uncle Doj were welcome for visits. And not one freeloading
cousin or nephew more.
People
who accuse the Captain of using his position to feather his nest ought to take
a close look at the nest. The Liberator, Mr. By Golly Military Despot of all
the Taglians and their many conquests and dependencies, lives just the way he
did back when he was only the Company physician and Annalist.
Also,
he moved me to provide me adequate work space. He sets great store by these
Annals.
My
books are not coming out so good. I don't always get stuff down the best way.
In his time, when he was on the mark, Croaker was really good. I can't help
comparing my stuff to his. When he tried to be Captain and Annalist at the same
time his work suffered. And Lady's writing strikes me as too direct, too curt,
and sometimes mildly self-indulgent. Neither was honest all the time and
neither considered trying to be consistent with the other, with their
predecessors, or even with their own earlier selves. If you read either one
closely and you spot some of their slips, neither will admit any screwup. If
Croaker says that it is eight hundred miles from Taglios to Shadowcatch and
Lady calls it four hundred, who is correct? Both say they are. Lady says the
discrepancy is because they grew up in different places and times where
different weights and measures were in use.
What
about character? They for sure see with different eyes there. You will never
catch Croaker portraying a Willow Swan who is not bitching about something.
Lady makes Swan energetic and rattle-mouthed and a lot more mellow. And the
difference could be that both Croaker and Lady know Swan's interest in Lady is
not brotherly.
And
consider how they saw Smoke. You wouldn't think they they were writing about
the same animal, they looked at that traitor so differently. Then there is
Mogaba. And Blade. Both blackhearted traitors, too. There is nothing in
Croaker's Annals because he was no longer writing when Blade deserted but in
daily life, constantly, he shows you that he hates Blade with a blue-assed
passion, on no rational basis. Meantime, he seems almost willing to forgive
Mogaba. Lady sees those two the other way around. She would broil Mogaba right
in the same pot with Narayan and probably let Blade go. Blade was another case
like Ram and Swan. I guess you don't need to agree on everything to be lovers.
They wrote differently, too. Croaker mostly kept his Annals as he went along,
then went back later to fill in after he heard from other sources. He tended to
fictionalize his secondary viewpoints, too, so his Annals are not always
absolutely straightforward history.
Lady
wrote her entire book after the fact, from memory, while she was laid up
waiting to have her baby. Her alternate viewpoint material is mainly secondhand
hearsay. I am replacing her more dubious stuff with material I consider more
accurate while I am in the process of putting all the confused stuff into a
uniform format.
Lady is
not always pleased with my efforts, he understated.
My
major fault is getting trapped in elaborate digressions. I have trouble leaving
things out. I spent some time with the official historians at Taglios's royal
library and those guys assured me that the real keys to history are the
details. Like the entire course of history can veer sharply because one man
gets dinged by a random arrow during a minor skirmish.
My
writing room is fifteen feet by twenty-two. That gives me space for all my
references, for copies of the old Annals, and for a large trestle table where I
work on several projects at once. And there is an acre of floor space left for
Thai Dei and Uncle Doj.
While I
write and study and revise he and Thai Dei clack away with wooden practice
swords or squeal and kick and bounce off the walls. Whenever one of them lands
in my space I toss him back. They are amazingly good at what they do-they ought
to be with all that practice but I think they are more likely to hurt each
other than any seriously large person, like our Old Crew guys.
I like
this job. It beats hell out of being standardbearer though I am stuck with
that, too, still. The standardbearer is always the first guy into a scrape and
he always has one hand tied up keeping a bigass pole from falling over.
I worry
about not catching details the way Croaker did. And I envy him his naturally
sardonic tone. He claims he did good only because he had the time. In those
days the Black Company was just a raggedyass gang sneaking around the edge of
things and there wasn't much going on. Nowadays we are in the deep shit all the
time. I don't like that. Neither does the Captain.
I
cannot imagine a man less pleased about having the power that has fallen into
his lap, mostly by default. He keeps it and uses it only because he doesn't
believe anyone else will take the Company where he is convinced that it has to
go.
I
managed to get along for several hours without falling down a well into the
past. I wasn't feeling badly. Sarie was in an excellent mood despite all her
mother could do to ruin our day. I was lost in my work, as comfortable with
existence as ever I get.
Somebody
came to the door.
Sarie
showed the Captain into the apartment. Uncle Doj and Thai Dei continued
clacking away. Croaker watched for a minute. "Unusual," he said. He
did not sound impressed.
"It's
not military," I told him. "It's fencing for loners. Nyueng Bao are
big on lone-wolf heroes." Not so the Old Man. His belief that you need
brothers to guard your back amounts to a religious conviction.
Nyueng
Bao fencing technique consists of brief but intense flurries of attack and
defense separated by inactive periods during which the fighters freeze in odd
stances, shifting almost imperceptibly as they try to anticipate one another.
Uncle
Doj is very good.
"I'll
grant you, they're graceful, Murgen. Almost like hutsch dancers."
By
marrying into Sarie's clan I bought into Nyueng Bao fighting styles. No choice,
really. Uncle Doj insisted. I am not terribly interested but I go along to keep
the peace. And it is good exercise. "It's all stylized, Captain. Every
stance and stroke has its name." Which I consider a weakness. Any fighter
that set in his ways ought to be easy meat for an innovator.
On the
other hand, I did see Uncle Doj deal with real enemies at Dejagore.
I
changed languages. "Uncle, will you permit my Captain to meet Ash
Wand?" They had taken the measure of one another long enough.
Ash
Wand is Uncle Doj's sword. He calls it his soul. He treats it better than he
would any mistress.
Uncle
Doj disengaged from Thai Dei, bowed slightly, departed. In moments he was back
with a monster sword. It was three feet long. He drew it carefully, presented
it to Croaker lying along his left forearm, where the steel would not contact
moist or oily skin. He bowed slightly as he did so.
He
wanted us to believe he spoke no Taglian, A vain pretense. I knew him back when
he was fluent.
Croaker
knew something about Nyueng Bao customs. He accepted Ash Wand with proper care
and courtesy, as though deeply honored.
Uncle
Doj ate that up.
Croaker
grasped the two-hand hilt clumsily. On purpose, I suspect. Uncle Doj darted in
to demonstrate the proper grip, the way he does with me during every training
session. That old boy is spry. He has ten years on Croaker but moves more
easily than I do. And he possesses remarkable patience.
"Fine
balance," the Captain said in Taglian. It would not surprise me to learn
that he had picked up Nyueng Bao, though. He has an easy way with languages.
"But this had better be superior steel." Because the blade was thin
and narrow.
I told
him, "He says it's four hundred years old and will cut plate armor. I
guarantee it cuts people just fine. I saw him use it more than once."
"During
the siege." Croaker studied the blade near the sword's hilt.
"Yes."
"Hallmark
of Dinh Luc Doc."
Eyes
suddenly narrow, usually stolid expression shoved aside by surprise, Uncle Doj
reclaimed his lover quickly. That Croaker might know something about Nyueng Bao
swordsmiths apparently troubled him. Croaker might not be nearly as stupid as
foreigners were supposed to be.
Uncle
Doj harvested one of his feeble crops of hair, drew it across Ash Wand's edge
with predictable results. Croaker observed, "A man could get cut and never
know it." "It happens," I told him. "You wanted
something?" Sarie brought tea. The Old Man accepted even though he doesn't
like tea. He watched me watch her, amused. Whenever Sahra is in a room I have
trouble paying attention to anything else. She gets more beautiful every time I
see her. I cannot believe my luck. I keep being scared that I will wake up.
Cold shivers.
"You
have a definite prize there, Murgen." Croaker had told me so before. He
approved of Sarie. It was her family that trou' bled him. "How come you
married the whole kaboodle?" For that he shifted to Forsberger. None of
the others spoke that northern tongue.
"You
had to be there." Which is really all you can say about Dejagore. The
Nyueng Bao and Old Crew became alloyed by the living nightmare.
Mother
Gota materialized. All four feet ten inches of bile. She glared at the Captain.
"Aha! The great man himself!" Her TagHan is an abomination but she
refuses to believe that. Those who fail to understand her do so on purpose, to
mock her.
She
circled Croaker, walking her bowlegged walk. Nearly as wide as she is tall,
without being really fat, ugly, waddling that waddle, she looked like a
miniature troll. And her own people call her The Troll behind her back. And she
has the personality. She could test the patience of a stone.
Thai
Dei and Sahra were very late children. I pray my wife will not come to resemble
her mother later, in character or physically. Like her grandmother would be
fine, though.
Cold in
here.
"Why
so hard you push my Sahra's man, ho, Mr. So High and Mighty Liberator?"
She hawked and spat to one side, the meaning of that no different to Nyueng Bao
than anyone else. She rattled faster and faster. The faster she yakked the
faster she waddled. "You think maybe he slave be? Warrior not? No time for
grandmother to make of me, him always away to do for you?" She hawked and
blank spat again.
She was
a grandmother all right. But none were mine and none were alive anymore. I
didn't remind her. No need attracting her attention.
An hour
earlier she had climbed all over me because I was a no good bonehead lackwit
layabout who wasted all his time reading and writing. Hardly the sort of thing
a grown man does with his time.
Nothing
ever satisfies Mother Gota. Croaker says that is because she hurts all the
time. He pretended he could not fathom her broken Taglian. "Yes, it really
is lovely weather. For this time of year. The agricultural specialists tell me
we will make two crops this year. Do you think you'll be able to double harvest
your rice?"
I Hawk
and spit, then a lapse into ferocious Nyueng Bao liberally spiced with
imaginative epithets, not all of them native to her birth tongue. Mother Gota
hates being humored or ignored more than she hates everything else.
Somebody
pounded on my door. Sarie was busy doing something somewhere that kept her from
being close enough to her mother to become embarrassed. I went. I found One-Eye
stinking up the hallway. The little wizard asked, "How you doing, Kid?
Here." He shoved a smelly, ragged, grubby bundle of papers into my hands.
"The Old Man here ?"
"What
kind of sorcerer are you if you don't know the answer to that?"
"A
lazy sorcerer."
I stepped aside. "What's this
mess?" I lifted the bundle.
"Them
papers you been after me about. My notes and Annals." He ambled over to
the Captain.
I
stared down at the mess in my hands. Some of the papers were moldy. Some were
waterstained. That was One-Eye. Four years late. I hoped the little rat did not
hang around. He would shed lice and fleas. He takes a bath only if he gets
drunk and falls in a canal. And that damned hat... I am going to burn it
someday.
One-Eye
whispered to the Captain. The Captain whispered back. Mother Gota tried to
eavesdrop. They changed to a language she did not know. She sucked in a bushel
of air and went to work.
One-Eye
stopped talking and stared at her. This was their first encounter, close up and
personal.
He
grinned.
She did
not faze him. He was two hundred years old. He had had obnoxious down to a fine
art generations before Mother Gota was born. He gave her a thumbs up, sidled
over to me grinning like a kid who had stubbed his toe on the pot at the end of
the rainbow. In Taglian he asked, "Want to make a formal introduction
here, Kid? I love her! She's great! Everything I've ever heard. She's perfect.
Give us a kiss here, lover."
Maybe
it was because Mother Gota was the only woman in Taglios shorter than him.
That
was the only time I ever saw my mother-in-law at a loss for words.
Thai
Dei and Uncle Doj seemed taken aback, too. One-Eye stalked Mother Gota around
the room. Finally, she fled.
"Perfect!"
One-Eye crowed. "She's absolutely perfect! The woman of my dreams. Are you
ready, Captain?"
Was he
high on something?
"Yeah."
Croaker separated himself from his barely tasted tea. "Murgen, I want you
to come with us. It's time to teach you some new tricks."
I
started to shake my head. I don't know why, Sarie slipped her arm around me.
She was back now, avoiding her mother by being where I was. She felt my
reluctance, squeezed my arm. She looked up at me with those gorgeous almond
eyes, asking why I was troubled.
"I
don't know." I figured we were going to interrogate the red-hand Deceiver.
That was not work I would enjoy.
Uncle
Doj astonished me by asking, "May I accompany you, husband of my
niece?"
"Why?"
I blurted.
"I
wish to inform my curiosity about what it is you people do." He spoke to
me slowly, as though to an idiot. I do suffer from a severe birth defect, by
his thinking. I was not born
Nyueng
Bao.
At
least he does not call me Bone Warrior and Stone Soldier anymore.
I never
did figure that out.
I
translated for the Old Man. He didn't bat an eye. "Sure, Morgen. Why not?
But let's get going before we all die of old age."
What
the hell? This was the guy who was sure the Nyueng Bao were up to no good.
I
looked at the mass of paper One-Eye passed off on me. It smelled of mildew. I
would try to make something of it later. If anything could be made of it. Knowing
One-Eye it could well be written in a language he no longer remembered.
32
One-Eye's
Annals were as terrible as I expected. And then some. Water, mold, vermin and
criminal neglect had left most of his recollections irretrievable. One recent memoir,
though, did survive except for a page in the middle which was just plain
missing. It will serve to illustrate what One-Eye considers to be an adequate
chronicle.
He made
up the spellings of most of the place names. I corrected to standard where I
could, from the maps, figure out where he had been.
In the
fall of our third year in Taglios the Captain decided to send the Khusavir
Regiment to Prehbehlbed, where the Prahbrindrah Drah was campaigning against a
bevy of minor Shadowlander princes. Me and several Company comrades were told
to go along to give the new regiment backbone. The traitor Blade was in the
region.
The
regiment proceeded through Ranji and Ghoja, Jaicur and Cantile, then Bhakur,
Danjil and other recently captured towns until, after two months, we overtook
the Prince at Prai-phurbed. There half the regiment split off to escort
prisoners of war and booty back to the north. The rest of us went west to
Asharan, where Blade caught us by surprise and we had to barricade the gates and
throw a lot of the natives off the wall because they might be spies. With my
talent we were able to hold out even though the green troops were terrified.
In
Asharan we found a large store of wine and whiled away the hours of the siege.
After a
few weeks Blade's men began to desert because of the cold and hunger and he
decided to go away.
It was
a very cold winter. We suffered a great deal and often had to threaten the
natives to get enough food and firewood. The Prince kept us moving, mostly far
from the heavy fighting, because the regiment was not experienced. In
Meldermhai three men and I got drunk and missed marching when the regiment
moved out. We had to travel almost a hundred miles counting only upon ourselves
in order to catch up. Once we took four horses from a local lord after we
stayed over the night in his manor. We took his brandy, too. The noble
complained to the Prince and we had to give the horses back.
We
spent a week at Forngaw, then the Prince ordered us south to High Nangel, where
we were supposed to join the Fourth Horse in trying to drive Blade's bandits
into the Ruderal canyon, but when we got there we found only one old woman in
the whole territory and nothing to eat but rotting cabbages, most of which the
peasants had buried in the earth before they fled.
Then we
went up to Silure by way of Balichore and in the forest there we found a tavern
almost like those in the north. While we were drunk an enemy witch sent an
attack of poisonous toads against us.
Next
day we had to walk several miles through swamps and melting snow and cold mud
in a low place where warm water runs out of the earth and keeps everything from
freezing. After a few leagues we came to the fortress of Tracil, where a
regiment recruited from former Shadowlander soldiers were besieging their
Tracili cousins. They had been there a long time so it was difficult to find
provisions anywhere nearby, even when we offered to pay.
I
worked three days in the field hospital there, where, because of the cold, they
treated many cases of frostbite. The cold killed more soldiers than did the
enemy.
From
Tracil we marched up to Melopil with the Prince's own guards and laid siege to
the local king's fortress, which stands on an island in the middle of a lake.
The lake was frozen. It was very cold and the ice was very thick and every time
we tried to go forward against the enemy their missiles came bouncing over the
ice.
* * *
Shadowlanders
were slaughtered with great vigor along with our men by engines atop the walls
until the garrison inside got the gates closed. Then the Howler came up from
Shadowcatch on his flying carpet and the magicks flew around like lightning in
a thunderstorm and we had to run away. Many were captured by the enemy.
After
two weeks passed orders came to march to join the siege at Rani Orthal. On the
way we found some wine and that ended in disaster, for the natives stole our
packs while we slept.
Forces
gathered from all over, on both sides, and I began to fear a major battle. That
would draw the Howler to Rani Orthal.
After
the city was surrounded the enemy made several attacks on our breastworks and
trenches, which resulted in heavy losses for them. After two weeks, when it was
starting to show spring, we launched a surprise attack at night which carried
the outer works right up to the stone wall. The soldiers killed everybody, so
angry were they, and so frightened to be fighting at night. When they reached
the top of the wall they threw down everyone, even the women and children.
Then
the Howler came up from Shadowcatch and with him a small swarm of shadows and
we had to abandon everything we had captured.
The
Howler and shadows went away when the sun rose and the Prahbrindrah Drah
himself went forward to tell the enemy we were going to attack come evening and
this time no mercy would be shown, but the attack never took place because the
enemy king decided to throw in his lot with Taglios. The city gates were opened
and the town given over to the soldiers for one night but the men were allowed
no weapons except their daggers.
The
soil in those parts is very poor. The crops are not of a delicate nature. They
eat much cabbage and roots, and rye is the common grain.
When we
were in garrison at Thruthelwar for a month I befriended the landlord's son, a
boy of about eleven, and found him intelligent but ignorant of both religion
and of reading and writing. His father reported that the Shadowmasters have
banned all religious practice and all education throughout their empire and
there were rewards out for books, especially older books, which were burned as
soon as they were turned in, and likewise there were rewards for priests who
tried to serve their faith, who were also burned as soon as they were turned
in. This rule must have pleased Blade very much.
After a
month in garrison orders came for the regiment to return to Jaicur, where Lady
was gathering an army for a summer campaign in the east. At Jaicur I left the
regiment and travelled north to Taglios, where I was received with great joy by
my old companions of the Black Company.
The
record of that campaign appears to be One-Eye's most careful and detailed. The
remaining fragments suggest stories much less coherent.
33
The
captive red-hand Deceiver awaited us in a room guaranteed proof against
sorcerous espionage. One-Eye swore he had woven the spells so well even Lady in
her heyday could not have picked through them to eavesdrop.
Croaker
grumbled, "What Lady could do back when doesn't concern me. I'm worried
about the Shadowmaster now. I'm worried about Soulcatcher now. She's lying low
but she is out there and she does want to know everything about everything. I'm
worried about the Howler now. He wants a big bite of the Company."
"It's
all right," One-Eye insisted. "The Dominator himself couldn't bust in
here."
"What
do you want to bet that's exactly what Smoke thought about his spyproof
room?"
I
shuddered. So did One-Eye. I had not witnessed Smoke's destruction by the
monster that got into his hidden place through a pinhole in his protection, but
I had heard. "Whatever became of Smoke?" I asked. The monster had not
killed him.
Croaker
lifted a finger to his lips. "Right around the corner." I thought we
were going back to the room where Goblin, One'Eye and the Old Man wakened me
from my last seizure. I just assumed they had the red-hand Strangler there,
behind that curtain. Not so. We arrived at what seemed to be a different place
entirely.
And the
Deceiver was not alone.
The
Radisha Drah, sister of the ruling Prince, the Prah-brindrah Drah, leaned
against a wall and stared at the prisoner in a way that suggested she enjoyed a
conviction that the Liberator was soft on villains. Small and dark and
wrinkled, like most Taglian women who make it past thirty, she was one hard
woman, and too bright besides. They say the only time she ever lost her
composure was the night Lady killed all the senior members of Taglios's various
priesthoods, ending religious resistance to her participation in the war effort
as a key player.
There
has been a lot less intrigue since that demonstration. Our allies and employers
now seem inclined to leave our destruction to us.
If you
polled the Taglian nobilities and priesthoods you would find that most of the
upper classes believe the Radisha makes the princely decisions. Which is near
the truth. Her brother is stronger than is commonly supposed but he prefers to
be off soldiering.
Behind
the Radisha stood a table. Upon the table lay a man. "Smoke?" I
asked.
My question
was answered. Smoke was still alive. And still in a coma. He had all the muscle
tone of a bowl of lard.
Behind
him was the other side of a curtain identical to the one I saw when I awakened.
Then this was the same room, approached from a different direction.
Strange.
"Smoke,"
Croaker agreed, and I realized I was being made privy to a major secret.
"But.
. ."
"This
character said anything interesting?" Croaker asked the Radisha, cutting
me off. She must have been amusing herself with the prisoner. And there must be
some reason the Captain did not want her paying too much attention to Smoke.
"No.
But he will."
The
Strangler faked a sneer. A brave man but a fool. He, of all people, would know
what torture could do.
Once
again I got that spine chill.
"I
know. Let's do it, One-Eye. Murgen kept us waiting long enough."
The
Annals. He held it off just so I could get it into the Annals.
He did
not have to bother. I am not a big torture enthusiast.
One-Eye
started humming. He patted the prisoner's cheek. "You're going to have to
help me out here, sweetheart. I'll be as kind as you let me. What's this thing
you Stranglers got going here in Taglios?" One-Eye looked to the Captain,
"When's Goblin coming back, Chief?" "Get on with it."
One-Eye
did something. The Strangler spasmed against his bonds, his scream not much
more than a breathless squeak. One-Eye said, "But I found him the perfect
woman, Boss. Ain't that right, Kid?" He leered evilly, bent over the
Deceiver. That brown raisin of a man wore nothing but a filthy loincloth.
So that
was why One-Eye was so excited about Mother Gota. He wanted to use her as a
practical joke on Goblin. I should have been angry, I guess, maybe for Sahra's
sake, but I could work up no indignation. That woman begged for abuse.
One-Eye
crooned, "You understand your position here, sweetheart? You were with
Narayan Singh when we caught you. You have the red hand. Those things tell me
you're one of those very special Deceivers that the Captain really wants."
He indicated Croaker. The word for Captain he used was jamadar, which has
strong religious connotations to the Deceivers.
Lady
got taken in by them but she fixed them by marking their top men permanently
with the red hand. That made them stand out in the crowd these days.
One-Eye
sucked spit between the stumps of his teeth. Somebody who did not know him
might have believed he was thinking. He said, "But I'm a swell guy who
hates to see people hurting so I'm gonna give you a chance not to end up like
this cockroach over here." He jerked a thumb at Smoke. Fire crackled
between the fingers of his other hand. The Strangler screamed the kind of
scream that rips your nerves out raw and salts their ends. "You can make
this last forever or you can get it over quick. All up to you. Talk to me about
what the Deceivers are up to here in Taglios." He leaned closer,
whispered, "I can even fix it so you can get away."
The
prisoner gaped for a moment. Sweat ran into his eyes, stung him. He tried to shake
it away.
"I
bet that she'd think that Goblin is just as cute as a bug," One-Eye said.
"What do you think, Kid?"
"I
think you'd better get on with it," Croaker snapped. He was not happy
dealing in torture and had no patience left for the games Goblin and One-Eye
play with one another.
"Oh,
keep your damned pants on, Chief. This guy ain't going nowhere."
"But
his friends are up to something."
I
glanced at Uncle Doj to see what the thought of the bickering. His face was
stone. Maybe he didn't understand Taglian anymore.
One-Eye
barked, "You don't like the way I do my job, fire me and do it
yourself." He prodded the prisoner. The Deceiver tensed in anticipation.
"You. What's up here in Taglios? Where are Narayan and the Daughter of
Night? Help me out here."
I
tensed up myself. I felt a big chill. What was it?
The
prisoner gulped air. Sweat covered his entire body. He could not win. If he
knew anything and talked as he must eventually his own kind would show him no
mercy later.
"Sufficient
unto the day the evil thereof," Croaker told him, sensing his thoughts.
My
sympathies all lay with the Old Man. Even if he ever does get his daughter back
he won't find what he is looking for. She has been a Deceiver from the day she
was born, raised to be the Daughter of Night who will bring on Kina's Year of
the Skulls. Hell, they consecrated her to Kina while she was still in the womb.
She would be what they wanted her to be. And that would be a darkness to break
her parents' hearts.
"Talk
to me, sweetheart. Tell me what I need to know." One-Eye tried to keep it
one on one, just him and his client. He gave the Strangler a moment to reflect.
The rest of us watched without expression, maybe a thimbleful of pity among us.
This was a black rumel man. In Strangler terms, generally, that meant he was
guilty of more than thirty murders, without remorse-unless he strangled a black
rumel man and thus gained acclaim by the most direct route.
Kina is
the ultimate Deceiver. She enjoys betraying her own on occasion.
An
argument One-Eye did not think to present to our pet Deceiver.
The
Strangler screamed again, tried to gurgle something.
"You'll
have to speak up," One-Eye told him.
"I
can't tell you. I don't know where they are."
I
believed him. Narayan Singh was not staying alive by announcing his itineraries
in a world where everybody really is out to get him.
"Pity.
So just tell us why we have Deceivers here in Taglios, after all this
time."
I
wondered why he kept going back to that. The Stranglers had not dared to
operate in the city for years.
One-Eye
and the Old Man must know something. But how?
The
prisoner screamed.
The
Radisha observed, "The ones we catch are always ignorant."
"Don't
matter," Croaker said. "I know exactly where Singh is. Or at least
where he'll be when he stops running. As long as he doesn't realize that, I
know he'll always be right where I want him."
Uncle
Doj's eyebrow twitched. Must be getting exciting for him.
The
Radisha glared, frowned, stared. She liked to believe that hers was the only
working brain in the Palace. Us Black Company types are just supposed to be
hired muscle. You could almost hear the creaks and groans as her mind turned
over. How could Croaker know something like that? "Where is he?"
"Right
now he's busting his butt trying to join up with Mogaba. Since we can't stop
him-because he's moving as fast as any message we could send after him-let's
forget him."
I
considered offering a word of suggestion about crows. Croaker talks to crows.
And crows fly faster than even a Deceiver can run. I was not paid to think and
I was not there to talk.
"Forget
him?" The Radisha seemed startled.
"Just
for the moment. Let's find out what his cronies are up to here."
One-Eye
resumed work. I glanced at Uncle Doj, who had stayed out of the way and quiet
longer than I had thought possible. He noticed my glance. In Nyueng Bao he
asked, "May I question the man?"
"Why?"
"I
would test his belief."
"You
don't speak Taglian well enough." Little dig there.
"Then
translate."
Just
for fun, or maybe to nudge Uncle Doj, Croaker said, "I don't mind if he
does, Morgen. He can't do any damage." His remark demonstrated clearly his
familiarity with Nyueng Bao dialect. There had to be a message in that, meant
for Uncle Doj particularly when taken with his earlier observation about Ash
Wand's provenance.
What
the hell? I was confused. And getting more than a little paranoid myself. Had I
come back to my own world after my most recent seizure?
In
Taglian as passable as I recalled him having, Uncle Doj shot quick, amiable
questions at the Deceiver. They were questions of the sort most people answer
without thought. We learned that the man had a family but his wife had died in
childbirth. Then he realized he was being manipulated and controlled his
tongue.
Uncle
Doj stamped around like a merry troll, chattering, and winkled out much of the
prisoner's past but not once did he get any closer to the facts of any new
Strangler interest in Taglios the city. Croaker, I noticed, paid more attention
to Uncle Doj than he did the prisoner. The Captain, of course, lives in the eye
of a tornado of paranoia.
Croaker
leaned close to me. In a midnight whisper he said, "You stay when the
others leave." He did not tell me why. He went on to say something to
One-Eye in a tongue even I did not understand.
He
spoke at least twenty languages, he had been with the Company so long. One-Eye
probably spoke a bunch more but shared them with nobody but Goblin. One-Eye
nodded and continued about his business.
Pretty
soon the runt wizard began edging Uncle Doj and the Radisha toward the door. He
did it so gently and smoothly that they never complained. Uncle Doj was a guest
to begin with and the Radisha did have pressing business elsewhere and One-Eye
went about it so unlike his usual abrasive self that he had them thinking it
was their own idea. In any event, they left.
Croaker
went with them, which helped, but he was back in five minutes. I told him,
"Now I've seen everything. There are no wonders left. I can get out of
this chicken outfit and go ahead with my plan to start a turnip ranch."
Which was only halfway a jest. Whenever the Company stops moving guys begin
developing plans. Human nature, I guess.
The
turnip is unknown here but I have seen vast tracts of land perfect for
cultivating turnips, parsnips and sugar beets. And Otto and Hagop are not far
away so seed should be available soon. Maybe they will even bring some
potatoes. Maybe they will even bring some potatoes.
Croaker
grinned, told One-Eye, "This weasel isn't going to tell us anything we can
use."
"You
know what it is, Chief? I'll bet you. He's stalling. He's got something he's
trying to hold onto just a little while longer. That's what goes through his
head every time I hurt him. He thinks he will endure it just one more time. And
then just one more time."
"Let
him get thirsty for a while." Croaker shoved the Deceiver's chair over
against a wall, tossed a piece of ragged linen over him as though he was
discarded furniture. "Murgen, listen up. Time is getting tight. Things are
going to start happening. I need you in the first rank, healed or not."
"I
don't like the sound of that."
He
didn't feel like joking. "We've discovered some interesting things about
Smoke." Suddenly he was speaking the Jewel Cities dialect, unknown outside
the Company here, unless Mogaba was lurking around. "We stalled because of
your lapses and what they might signify, but we have to move on. It's time to
take chances. There are some new tricks you need to learn, old dog."
"You
trying to scare me?"
"No.
This is important. Pay attention. I don't have time to work Smoke anymore.
Neither does One-Eye. The arsenal is eating up all his time. And I don't trust
anybody else but you to help with this."
"Huh?
You're going too fast for me."
"Pay
attention. And by that I mean keep your ears and eyes open and your mouth shut.
We may not get much time. The Radisha could decide to come back and torment the
Deceiver again. She likes that sort of thing." He told One-Eye,
"Remind me to see if we can't get Cordy Mather assigned here permanently.
She doesn't get underfoot when he's around."
"He's
supposed to be back in town soon. If he's not here already."
"That
there is my intelligence chief," Croaker told me, pointing at One-Eye and
shaking his head. "Blind in one eye and can't see out the other."
I
glanced at the cloth-covered villain. He had begun snoring. A good soldier
seizing his rest when it was available.
34
Hours
passed. Croaker left, then returned. Now he slapped me on the back. "See
how easy it is, Murgen? Ever seen such a big trick that was this simple?"
"Nothing
to it," I agreed. "Like falling off a log." Or like falling into
a bottomless pit, maybe, which I have had enough involuntary practice doing.
Nothing
is ever as simple as somebody tells you it is going to be. I knew this would be
no exception when I tried it myself, amazing as it was. "At least now I
understand how you got so damned spooky, knowing things you shouldn't."
Croaker
laughed. "Go ahead." Showing off his astonishing discovery had put
him into a grand mood. "Try it."
I gave
him a look he chose to interpret as my not really understanding what he meant.
Nothing to it. Like falling off a log. Maybe. Only One-Eye is not a very good
teacher.
"Do
what One-Eye showed you. Decide what you want to see. Tell Smoke. But be damned
careful how you do that. You have to be precise. Precision is everything.
Ambiguity is deadly."
"That's
the way the magic goes in every story I ever heard, Captain. The ambiguities
screw you every time."
"You
think so? You might be right." I must have touched a nerve. He became
thoughtful suddenly. "Go ahead."
I was
reluctant. "This whole thing is too much like what keeps happening to me
when I fall down the rabbit hole to Dejagore. Could Smoke be doing that to me
somehow?"
Croaker
shook his head. "No way. It's not the same. Go ahead. I insist. You're
wasting time. Go look at something you always wanted to know about for the
Annals. We'll be right here to cover you."
"How
about I go look for Otto and Hagop ?" "I know where they are. They
just passed the First Cataract. They'll be here in a few days. Try something
else." Hagop and Otto had spent the last three years travelling back north
with a Taglian delegation and letters from Lady to those she had left behind.
Their mission was to learn anything possibly known there about the
Shadowmaster, Longshadow. One of the dead Shadowmasters, Stormshadow, had
turned out to be a refugee from Lady's old empire, Stormbringer, previously
thought dead. And two other big and nasty sorcerers long believed perished also
have turned up and remain burrs under our saddles, the Howler and Lady's mad
sister, Soulcatcher. And there was Shapeshifter, too, but we took care of him.
That
Otto and Hagop managed to survive so incredible a journey was, to me, a major
miracle. But Otto and Hagop are blessed.
"I
expect they'll have whole new collections of scars to talk about."
Croaker
nodded. He seemed a little grim now. I little anxious. Time to get on with my
training.
An
unexplained tragedy of the past caught my imagination. There had been some
grotesque, horrible, senseless killings in a village called Bond that never got
connected with anyone or anything, to my recollection. I was sure they had to
be important somehow and was baffled that, even today, the slaughter remained
unsolved and unresolved.
I
gripped Smoke's hand, blanked my mind, spoke careful instructions in a whisper.
And away I went, out of my body, so suddenly I almost panicked. For a moment I
thought I recalled doing all this before. But I could not remember what was
going to happen.
The Old
Man was right. This was not the same as my unwanted plunges into my own past.
In this nightmare I was aware and in control. I was a disembodied vision racing
toward Bond but my mission remained clear in my mind. That was a big
distinction. When I floated over Dejagore I lacked identity and control till I
merged with my self of the past. Then I forgot the future.
Bond is
a hamlet on the south bank of the River Main, facing the Vehdna-Bota ford. For
centuries the Main has been the traditional boundary of the Taglian heartland.
The peoples who live below the river share the languages and religions of
Taglios but are considered only tributary cousins by the Taglians themselves.
The
nonagrarian part of Bond's economy revolved around a small remount station for
the military courier post. A minimal garrison of Shadar cavalrymen managed the
station and kept watch on ford traffic. Bond was the kind of duty soldiers
dream about. There were no officers and very little work. The river was low
enough to ford only about three months a year. But the garrison got paid all
year round.
Smoke's
soul slipped back to that long ago disaster. I stayed with him, carrying a load
of fear despite all of Croaker's reassurances.
It was
very dark that night in that Bond gone by. Horror stalked out of the night and
those nightmares where men are more often prey than predator. A monster padded
through the hamlet, headed toward the army stable. I watched from a place where
I could offer no warning.
One
solitary soldier had the watch. He was nodding. Neither he nor the horses
sensed their danger, The latch rose inside the stable door. No animal mind knew
enough to pull a string. The soldier started awake just in time to see a dark
shape with scarlet eyes hurtling toward him.
The
monster fed, then padded into the night. It killed again. Screams wakened the
garrison. The soldiers seized their arms. The monster, like an oversize black
panther, loped to the river, swam to the northern shore.
I knew
something now. The killer was a shapeshifter, the acolyte of the sorcerer
Shapeshifter, whom we had destroyed the night we captured Dejagore. She got
away, trapped in the animal shape.
Why
just this one incident in more than four years?
I
wanted to follow the panther, to discover what had become of it, but Smoke
could not be coaxed to go. The comatose wizard had no will or ego I could
detect but, apparently, he did have limits or constraints.
Funny,
though. I felt no real emotion until I returned to the reality of the Palace.
Then it hit me in a wave, hard, leaving me breathless. I asked, "Is
whatever I see out there true?"
"We
haven't seen any evidence otherwise." Croaker's caution meant he had
reservations. Always suspicious, our Captain. "You look bad. You see
something nasty?"
"Very."
One-Eye was gone. And the Strangler had fouled himself. I wrinkled my nose.
"I can use Smoke to look anywhere?"
"Almost.
Some places he can't or won't go. And he can't go back to any time before he
went into the coma. You can catch the Annals up now, eyewitness style, if you
will. But always remember to be careful about pointing him right."
"Wow."
The implications had begun to sink in. "This is worth more than a veteran
legion." Now I knew how we had pulled off some really startling coups
lately. If you can perch on your enemy's shoulder nothing is going to go his
way.
"It's
worth a lot more. And that's why you're going to keep your mouth shut even
around your dearly beloved."
"Does
the Radisha know?"
"No.
You, me and One-Eye. Maybe Goblin if One-Eye just had to share it with
somebody. And that's the limit. One-Eye found it by accident when he was trying
to pull Smoke out of his coma. Smoke has been to Overlook. He's walked around
inside. He's actually met Longshadow. We wanted to ask him some questions. We decided
they could wait. You don't tell anybody. Understand?"
"There
you go being suspicious of my in-laws again."
"I'd
cut your throat."
"I
get the message, boss. Don't brag it up to my Deceiver drinking buddies. Shit.
This could win us the war."
"It
won't hurt. As long as it's secret. I have business with the Radisha. Practice
using him. Don't worry about working him too hard. You can't." He squeezed
my shoulder, left the room with a stride that seemed both determined and
fatalistic. Must be facing another budgetary conference. Depending on whether
you were the Liberator or the Radisha the military either never had enough or
always wanted too much.
So.
There was just me and one halfway-dead wizard and one stinky Strangler under a
linen rag. I considered using Smoke to find out what Stinky's buddies were up
to in Taglios but reasoned that the Captain would not have had him interrogated
if Smoke had been able to provide useful answers. Maybe you not only had to be
precise in your instructions, you had to have some idea what you were seeking.
You could not find your own elbow if you could not guess what directions to
give to get you there.
The
point? Old Smoke was a miracle but he had major limitations. And most of those
would exist right inside our own heads. We would become the beneficiaries or
victims of our own imaginations.
What
should I go see, then?
I was
excited now. I was up for an adventure. So, what the hell? Why not go straight
for the biggie? How about taking a peek at the Shadowmaster himself,
Longshadow, number one boy on the Black Company shit list?
35
Longshadow
could have pranced right out of my fantasies. He was a deadly freak. He was
tall and thin and twitchy, given to flights of rage and subject to sudden spells
resembling malarial shakes. He wore a sort of loose black floor-length chemise
that concealed a deathly gauntness. He ate infrequently and then only picked.
He could have been a famine victim.
Threads
of silver and gold and glistening black, embroidered or woven into his robe,
protected him with dozens of static sorceries. At first blush he seemed a
hundred times more paranoid than Croaker. But he did have reason. There was
just a whole world full of folks who wanted to roast his skinny ass and he had no
friends closer than Mogaba and Blade.
The
Howler was not a friend. He was an ally.
One of
Longshadow's obsessions was the Black Company. I did not understand. The kind
of enemies we were should not have troubled him at all. We were no world-killers.
His
face, which he kept masked except when he was alone, was skull-like. His waxy,
pallid features were frozen in a permanent expression of fear. There was no
guessing his birth race. His eyes were a washed out grey with splotches of pink
around the edges but I don't think he was an albino. I exploited Smoke's
ability, fluttered about through time to find out all the interesting stuff
fast. I did not catch Longshadow completely out of costume once. The man did
not bathe. He did not change clothing. He wore gloves all the time.
The
last of the four Shadowmasters, now the Shadowmaster, he was the unquestioned
tyrant of the city Shadowcatch and a demigod within his fortress Overlook. His
slightest whim could set a hundred terrors and ten thousand men scrambling to
appease him. And still he was a prisoner doing life without hope of parole.
Overlook
is, but for one, the southernmost work of Man. I tried pushing past that
fortress. Somewhere in the mists beyond Overlook is Khatovar, toward which we
have marched for years, lust a glimpse would be marvelous.
Smoke
refused to go any farther south.
Smoke
had been crazy about Khatovar while he was still healthy. Khatovar was the
reason he deserted the Radisha and Prahbrindrah Drah, years ago. His fear of
Khatovar must have impressed itself upon his very flesh and soul.
Longshadow's
fortress was gargantuan. Overlook dwarfed every human construction I have ever
seen, including the Lady's monstrous tower at Charm. Already two decades in the
building, Overlook's construction had become the main industry of
Shadowcatch-the city that was called Kiaulune before the coming of the
Shadowmasters. Kiaulune meant Shadow Gate in the local dialect.
The
builders worked day and night. They knew no holidays. Longshadow was determined
that his fortress be complete before his enemies overtook him. If he won that
race he believed he would become master of the world. No power of heaven or
hell or earth ought to be able to reach him inside a finished Overlook. Not
even the darkness that brushed him every night with its terror.
Overlook's
outer walls reared a hundred or more feet high. Where are you going to find a
ladder that tall?
Brass
and silver and gold characters shone on the steel plates that sheathed the rude
stone of the wall face. Battalions of workmen did nothing but keep those runes
polished and gleaming.
I could
not read them but I knew they anchored massive defensive spells. Longshadow's
spellwork overlaid everything that was part of Overlook, layer upon layer. If
he was allowed enough time every exterior surface of the fortress would be
hidden beneath and behind impenetrable tangles of sorceries.
Once
the sun went down Overlook became a conflagration of light. Bright crystal
chambers topped every tower, making the place seem a forest of lighthouses. The
crystal domes were places whence Longshadow could observe safe from his
terrors. The overpowering lights left no places for shadows to hide.
He
feared that which he mastered far more than anything else in the world. Even
the Black Company, for him, was a buzzing mosquito of a nuisance.
Even
unfinished Overlook daunted me thoroughly. What sort of hubris-driven madmen
were we to chart a course that must run through and beyond that stronghold?
But
Longshadow had enemies not as easily daunted as I. For some of those no earthly
fortress, nor even time itself, meant much. They would devour him now or later,
the moment his guard fell.
He had
chosen to play for the ultimate stakes in a game where the risks were as grim
as the potential winnings were great. It was too late to get out. He would be
victor or victim.
Longshadow
lived inside the crystal chamber that topped Overlook's tallest central tower.
He slept seldom, for fear of the night. He spent hours and hours just staring
southward at a plain of glittering stone.
A
screech ripped the air over the grim city. The people of Shadowcatch ignored it. If they thought about their
master's strange ally at all it was, probably, to hope that a fate would catch
up and rob Longshadow of this potent weapon. The inhabitants of Kiaulune were a
broken people, spiritless, without hope, worse even than the Jaicuri at their
lowest ebb during the siege of Dejagore.
Almost
all of them were too young to recall a time when there was not a Shadowmaster
there exercising more power over their lives than had their lost gods.
Even
Longshadow could not extirpate rumor. Even at the heart of his empire some
people had to travel and travelers always carry tales. Some stories are even
true. The people of Shadowcatch knew that a doom from the north was coming.
The
name of the Black Company lay at the heart of every rumor. That made no one
happy. Longshadow was a very devil but many of his people feared his fall would
be but the precursor to a far bleaker season.
Man,
woman and child, the people of Shadowcatch were privy to the one true secret of
the universe: there is always a darker shadow lurking beyond the one whose face
you can see.
Longshadow
reached out and inflicted pain and fear because he himself was the victim of a
thousand terrors.
It was
ugly out there. So ugly I wanted to go back somewhere where it was warm and
there was someone to hold me and tell me that the dark was not always the
lurking place of terror. I wanted my Sarie, my light in the night that rules
the world. "Smoke, take me home."
36
Croaker
did warn me. Be precise, he said. He warned me several times, in fact.
I was
ripped this way and dragged that, to and through the place of blood and
burning, papers browning, blackening, curling in such slow motion. Blood pooled
deep where I lay in my own vomit. The slap of running feet was like the slow
booming footfalls of giants.
I heard
screams that had no end.
Croaker
warned me. I was thoughtless. What he did not tell me, or maybe he did not
understand, was that the concept "home" could in one man's mind
become defined by emotional pain.
Torn.
Shredded. Smoke took me to Taglios only for that minute in the real now that is
like the end of all time. I reeled and flung away from there with such
revulsion that I threw myself and the hateful shreds and a disoriented Smoke
all the way to Hell.
He had
no will and no identity so he could not and did not laugh as I floated down into
the lake of pain.
Hell
has a name. Its name is Dejagore. But Dejagore is only Hell's lesser face.
From
the greater Hell I escaped. One more time.
No
identity and no will.
The
wind blows but nothing moves in the place of glittering stone. Night falls. The
wind dies. The plain yields up its heat as shadows waken. Moonlight settles
upon the silence of stone.
The
plain runs east and west, north and south, without discernible bounds, viewed
from within. Though its ends be uncertain it has a definite center. That is an
epic structure built of the same stone as the pillars and plain.
Within
that fastness nothing moves, either, though at times mists of light shimmer as
they leak over from beyond the gates of dream. Shadows linger in comers. And way
down inside the core of the place, in the feeblest throb of the heart of
darkness, there is life of a sort.
37
No
will. No identity. Now no Smoke.
Now
just pain. So much Smoke drifted away. Now just slavery to the memories.
Now at
home in the house of pain.
38
There
you are! So here we are again. You were missed. . . . faceless thing that,
nevertheless, seems to be smiling, pleased with itself.
It has
been a night full of adventures. Has it not? And the fun continues. Look. There.
The Black Company and their auxiliaries have begun making life especially
unpleasant for Shadowlanders so bold as to have taken up residence inside
Dejagore's wall.
See how
they use the doppelgangers and imaginary soldiers to lure the southerners into
deadly traps, to get them to betray themselves.
Oh. And
come back to the wall. This is a small thing but it could become the stuff of
epics.
The
fighting has all shifted to the east side of the city. Hardly anybody is over
there now. A few men to watch from the ramparts is all. And some unenthusiastic
Shadowlander scouts down there in the darkness, not really paying attention.
Otherwise how could they miss this spidery little figure rappelling down the
outside of the wall?
Why on
earth would a two-hundred-year-old, fourth-rate sorcerer want to climb down a
rope to go where very unfriendly little brown men might decide to dance on his
head?
The
wounded stallion of mysterious sorcerous breed has stopped screaming. At last.
It is dead. Green misty stuff still rises from its death wound. The wound still
glows at its edges.
Out
there? Yes. Look at them. Two very devils they are, aren't they, cloaked in
their pink mists? They don't seem to be coming to devour the city, though, do
they?
What is
that? The Shadowlanders out there are scattering like the fox is in the
henhouse. Their cries are filled with pure terror. Amongst them something dark
moves swiftly. Look. It pulled a man down there. Didn't it?
There
is so little light now that the focus of battle has shifted. The old man is as
black as the heart of the night itself. Think any mortal eye will notice him
sneaking around among the dead? Where is he headed? Shadowspinner's dead horse?
Who
would expect that? It's the act of a madman.
The
creeping darkness is moving toward the dead horse, too. See how its eyes flash
red when the fires in the city flare up. Look at that fool, running toward it
instead of away. There go his guts. Stupidity can be fatal.
The
little black man has vanished because he has stopped moving. There he is. He
heard something. There he goes, trotting toward the dead stallion. He wants his
spear back. And maybe that does make some crazy sense. He worked hard making
it.
He has
stopped again, eye huge as he sniffs the night and catches an almost-forgotten
odor. At the same moment the deadly darkness catches wind of him.
A
pantherine roar of triumph stills hearts all across the plain. The darkness
begins moving faster and faster.
The
little black man grabs his spear and runs for the wall. Will he make it? Can
two stubby, ancient legs carry him there fast enough to escape the death racing
toward him? The thing is huge. And it is filled with joy. The little man
reaches the rope. But he is still eighty feet down from safety. And he is old
and winded. He whirls. His timing is perfect. The head of his spear reaches out
just as the monster leaps. The beast twists in the air, evading the killing
thrust but taking a cruel wound from its snout back through its left ear. It
howls. Green mist boils off its redly-glowing wound. The beast loses all
interest in the old man, who begins his long climb to the ramparts. That
bizarrely carved spear is slung across his back now, held there by a mundane
length of cotton string.
No one
notices. No one cares. The fighting has gone elsewhere.
times
they are running, sometimes just slinking away through the shadows before death
overhauls them.
Look
there. Shadowspinner, the king enemy himself, all but crippled, paying no
attention to anyone or anything but those two pink-limned archetypes come out
of the hills to devour him.
And
Mogaba? Watch him be the master tactician. Watch him be the ultimate warrior
exploiting the enemy's every weakness now that there is no chance to accomplish
the deviltry j that moved him earlier in the evening. See that? No southerner,
I however great his reputation, dares come near Mogaba. Even their great heroes
are like novice children when he steps forward himself.
He is
way bigger than life, this Mogaba.
He is
the triumphant centerpiece of his own imagined saga.
Something
has gone out of the southerners.
They
wanted to conquer. They knew they had to conquer because their master
Shadowspinner would not tolerate anything less. He has a particular lack of
understanding when it comes to failure. His followers are established solidly
inside the city. Mild stubbornness will give them success.
But
they are on the run.
Something
has grabbed hold of them and convinced them that it is not possible for even
their souls to survive if they stay inside Dejagore.
39
The
southerners seem to have just closed their eyes and shoved their heads into a
beehive, don't they? What? Why so reluctant? Come see. This is amusing.
Everywhere you look the southerners are falling back. Some-
40
You all
right, Murgen?" I shook my head. I felt like a kid who had spun around
about twenty times, intentionally trying to make himself dizzy before jumping
into some silly competition.
I was
in an alley. Runt boy Goblin was beside me, looking extremely concerned.
"I'm fine," I told him.
Then I
fell to my knees, stuck my hands out to grab the alley walls so I would not
spin around anymore. I insisted, "I'm all right."
"Of
course you are. Candles. Keep an eye on this dork. He tries to take over, get
deaf. He's got too tender a heart."
I tried
not to let my ego become engaged. Maybe I was too tender, too much a sucker.
The world sure isn't kind to the man who tries to be gentle and thoughtful.
Its
spin slowed down till I no longer had to hold on. A scuffle broke out behind
us. Someone cursed in a nasal, liquid tongue. Somebody else growled, "This
asshole is fast!"
"Whoa
whoa whoa!" I yelled. "Let the man alone! Let him come up here."
Candles
didn't knock me over the head or contradict me. The short, wide Nyueng Bao guy
who had shown me to Ky Dam's hideout marched up to me. The fingers of his right
hand rubbed his right cheek. He seemed utterly astonished that somebody had
laid a hand on him. His ego suffered again when he spoke in Nyueng Bao and I
said, "Sorry, old-timer. No speakee. Gonna got to be Taglian or Groghor
with me." In Groghor, which my maternal grandmother spoke because Grandpa
captured her from those people, I asked, "What's happening?" I knew
maybe twenty words in Groghor, but that was twenty more than anyone else within
seven thousand miles.
"The
Speaker sends me to lead you to where the invader is most vulnerable. We have
watched closely and know."
"Thank
you. We appreciate it. Lead on." Shifting languages, I observed,
"Marvellous how these guys suddenly talk the lingo when they want
something." Candles grunted.
Goblin,
who had sneaked forward for a look around, returned just in time to offer me
directions to the same weak point the Nyueng Bao had in mind. The squat man
seemed a little surprised we could find our butts with our hands, maybe even a
touch disgruntled.
"You
got a name, short and wide?" I asked. "If you don't have one you
prefer I guarantee you these guys will hang one on you and I promise you won't
like it."
"Hear
hear," Goblin agreed, chuckling. "I am Doj. All Nyueng Bao call me
Uncle Doj." "All right, Uncle. You going up there with us? Or did you
just come over to direct traffic?" Already Goblin was whispering
instructions to the guys creeping up behind us. No doubt he had left a few soft
spells of sleepiness or confusion amongst the southerners as he was scouting.
Little
discussion was needed. We would drive into their soft spot, kill anything that
moved, split them in half, butcher anybody who didn't run away, then we would
back away before Mogaba began feeling too confident.
"I
will accompany you although that stretches the Speaker's instructions to
extremes. You Bone Warriors surprise us continually. I wish to watch you at
your work."
I never
considered killing people to be my profession but did not care to argue.
"You speak Taglian very well, Uncle."
He
smiled. "I am forgetful, though, Stone Soldier. I may not remember a word
after tonight." Unless the Speaker jogged his memory, I supposed.
Uncle
Doj did a great deal more than watch us hack and stab southerners. He turned
into a one-man cyclone flailing around with a lightning sword. He was as sudden
as the lightning but as graceful as a dancer. Each time he moved another
Shadowlander fell.
"Damn,"
I told Goblin a while later. "Remind me not to get into a quarrel with
that character."
"I'll
remind you to bring a crossbow and let him have it in the back from thirty feet
is what I'll do. After I put a deafness and a stupidity spell on him to even
things up a little."
"Don't
be surprised if it's me distracting you someday when One-Eye sneaks up and
offers you a cactus suppository."
"Speaking
of the runt. Tell me. Who's being conspicuously absent without leave
lately?"
I sent
messages to the various units suggesting that we had done our part to relieve
Mogaba's troops. We should all go back to our part of town, patch ourselves up,
take naps, like that. I told the Nyueng Bao elder, "Uncle Doj, please
inform the Speaker that the Black Company extends its gratitude and friendship.
Tell him he is free to call upon that at any time. We will extend ourselves as
much as possible."
The
short, wide man bowed far enough that his movement had to mean something. I
bowed back, almost as deeply. That must have been the right move because he
smiled slightly, bowed shallowly for himself, hustled off.
"Runs
like a duck," Candles observed.
"I'm
glad that duck was on our side, though."
"You
can say that again."
"I'm
glad that duck . . . Argh!" Candles had me by the throat.
"Somebody
help me shut him up."
That
was just the start of what became a wild night of blowing off tensions. I got
no chance to participate myself but I heard it was a banner night for the
Jaicuri whores.
41
Where
the hell have you been?" I snarled at One-Eye. "The Company just
fought through its nastiest episode in, oh, just days, and you were obviously
absent every stinking second." Not that his presence would have made any
difference.
One-Eye
grinned. My displeasure did not bother him a bit. He had outlived or
outstubborned a parade of snotnoses like me. "Shit, Kid, I had to get my
Shadowmaster sticker back, didn't I? I've got a lot of work in that thing. . .
. What's the matter?"
"Huh?"
For a moment I saw a little black louse scuttling across a grey landscape from
a height unattainable anywhere in Dejagore, even atop the citadel, where Old
Crew guys were not welcome anymore. "Never mind, runt. I'd like to kick
your ass but it wouldn't do any good now. So you were out there. What became of
Widowmaker and Lifetaker?" While I was arranging a quieter life for our
leader those two vanished without a trace.
I
wondered how Mogaba would write all this if he was keeping the Annals.
"One-Eye?"
"What?"
Now he sounded irritated.
"You
want to answer me? What happened to Widowmaker and Lifetaker?"
"You
know something, Kid? I don't have the faintest freaking idea. And I don't care.
I only had one thing on my mind. I wanted my spear back so I could use it next
time that sucker ain't looking. Then I had to worry about dodging a gang of
raggedyass Shadowlanders who tried to jump me. They went away somewhere. All
right?"
And
none of us could fathom that. Because they vanished just when the Shadowlander
confidence was rockiest. Shadowspinner had his tail between his legs and his
boys could have been broken.
I
grumbled, "If that was the Old Man and Lady they would've kept coming till
they broke the whole show wide open. Wouldn't they?"
I
glared at an albino crow perched not twenty feet away. Its head was cocked. It
stared at me with malign intelligence.
There
were a lot of crows tonight.
Other
agendas were being pursued. I was just one pawn caught up in tides of intrigue.
But if we were careful the Company need not get swept away.
Mogaba
and the Nar and their Taglian troops stayed busy for days. Maybe the
Shadowmasters decided to make Mogaba pay for his failure to fulfill his end of
the implicit bargain.
Which
was just one more example of the way people down here go bugfuck when they are
involved with the Black Company.
It
could make a guy nervous if he thought about everybody within a thousand miles
seeming to wish he'd never been born.
My guys
enjoyed Mogaba's situation. And he could not squawk about their attitudes. We
gave him exactly what he asked. We saved his ass and set him up so all he had
to do was chase a few Shadowlanders out of town.
I had
to see him almost every day at staff meetings. Again and again we showed
ourselves to the soldiers, pretending to be brothers marching shoulder to
shoulder against our evil foe.
Not
once was anybody fooled except maybe Mogaba.
I never
took it personal. I took a stance I believed the Annalists of the past would
approve, just picturing Mogaba as not one of us.
We are
the Black Company. We have no friends. All others are the enemy, or at best not
to be trusted. That relationship with the world does not require hatred or any
other emotion. It requires wariness.
Perhaps
our refusal to remonstrate, or even to acknowledge Mogaba's treachery, was the
final straw, or perhaps the back-breaker was his awareness that even his Nar
compatriots now believed the real Captain might still live. Whatever, the
ultimate and perfect warrior drifted across a boundary from beyond which he
could not return. And we did not discover the truth until we had paid in
treasures of pain.
It took
ten days for Dejagore to return to normal if normal was our state before the
great attack. Both sides had suffered terribly. I believed Shadowspinner would
now just lick his wounds and let us get hungry for a while.
42
Got
something for you, Kid." I started awake. "What... ?" What
happened? I don't drift off that way.
One-Eye
had a big shit-eating grin on but it evaporated when he looked at me closer. He
darted in, grabbed my chin, turned my head right and left. "You just have
one of your spells?"
"Spells?"
"You
know what I mean."
Not exactly.
I just had their word for the fact that I went spooky sometimes.
"You've
got a kind of psychic shimmer. Maybe I caught you just in time."
He and
Goblin kept talking about doing experiments to find out what is happening but
there never seemed to be time to actually do anything. "What do you
have?"
"The
work parties broke into the old catacombs this morning."
"Longo
told me."
"Everybody's
charging around in there, all excited."
"I
can imagine. Find any treasure yet?"
One-Eye
looked put-upon. For such a blackhearted toad he can manage a truly impressive
show of self-righteous injury.
"I
take it not."
"We
found some books. A whole pile. All sealed up neat and everything. Looks like
they've been there since the Shadowmasters first came."
"Makes
sense since they always burned the books and the priests. You find any priests
lurking down there?"
"Not
hardly. Look, I got to get back." Before somebody grabbed a treasure out
from under him, no doubt. "I got a couple guys lugging them books up for
you."
"Gods
forfend you should have lifted anything yourself."
"You
got a serious attitude problem, Kid. I'm an old man." One-Eye did a fade.
He has that knack when he is about to find himself in an indefensible position.
A city
seldom is buttoned up so tight that no news gets in from outside. Sometimes it
seems almost mystical but the word does come through. In Dejagore rumor seldom
brought in anything Mogaba wanted to hear.
I was
studying the discovered books, so intrigued I was letting duties slide. They
were written in Jaicuri but the written form thereof is almost identical to
written Taglian.
Goblin
stepped in. "You doing all right? No more dizziness?" "No. You
guys worry too much."
"No,
we don't. Look, some new rumors are going around. There's supposedly a relief
column headed our way. Blade, of all people, is in charge."
"Blade?
He isn't. . . . He's never run anything bigger than a reduced company. Before
we ever got here. Fighting guerrilla style against amateurs."
"I
don't make them up, I just report them. He did do well." "So did
Willow Swan and Cordy Mather. But that was accident and luck and Shadowlander
stupidity more than anything those three actually did. Why on earth is he
commanding an army?"
"He's
supposedly Lady's second in command. Not much doubt anymore that she survived.
She's also pissed off. And putting together a new army."
"Bet
Mogaba's jumping for joy. Running around hollering, 'We're saved! We're
saved!'" "You might say he's jumping."
Over
the following few days we heard a thousand wild stories. If a tenth were true
some really bizarre changes were underway out there in the world.
"You
heard the latest?" Goblin asked me one night when I took a rare break from
the books to examine that outer world from the wall. "Lady ain't Lady
after all. She's the incarnation of some goddess named Kina. A real badass,
too, apparently."
"She
would be. Thai Dei. You know Kina, don't you? Tell us about her." Thai Dei
wasn't allowed into our warrens but he always turned up whenever I came up for
air.
He
forgot all three words of Taglian he had admitted to knowing. The name of that
goddess scrubbed his brain clean.
I said,
"That's what happens when you mention Kina to any of these people. I can't
even get our prisoners to talk about her. You would think she belonged to the
Black Company." "Must be a real charmer," Bucket opined.
"Oh, she is. She is. There's one." I meant a shooting star. We were
keeping count. Also of enemy watchfires. The southerners had scattered in small
unit encampments around the plain recently. I guess they were afraid we might
sneak away. "You know something about her, then?" Goblin asked.
"From those books you guys found." The men were bitter. The books and
some sealed jars filled with grain were the only treasures they unearthed. The
Gunni were the majority religion in Jaicur and the Gunni do not bury their
dead. They burn them. The minority Vehdna do bury their dead but do not include
any grave goods. Where their dead are bound they have no need of luggage. In
paradise everything is provided. In hell, too. "One was a compilation of
Gunni myths, in variants from all over. The guy who recorded them was a
religious scholar. His book wasn't meant to get out where it might confuse
ordinary people."
I'm
confused and there ain't nothing ordinary about me,"
Bucket
observed.
"So
what's the scoop, Murgen? How come they won't tell us about this bitch? Whoa!
Did you see that one? It exploded."
"All
right," I told them. "The Gunni religion is the most common one
around here."
"I
think we know that, Murgen," Goblin said.
"Just
making the point. Most people down here believe in Kina. Even if they're not
Gunni, they believe. Here's the story. The Gunni have Lords of Light and Lords
of Darkness. They've been doing their lording since the beginning of
time." "Sounds like standard stuff."
"It
is. Only the value systems are different from what we knew back home. The
balance between darkness and light is more dynamic here, and isn't weighted the
same emotionally as our struggle between good and evil. Moreover, Kina is a
sort of self-elevated outside agency of decay and corruption that attacks both
darkness and light. She was created by the Lords of Light to help defeat a horde
of really nasty demons they couldn't handle any other way. She helped by eating
the demons. Naturally, she got fat. And apparently wanted dessert because she
tried to eat everybody else, too."
"She
was stronger than the gods who created her?" "Guys, I didn't make
this stuff up. Don't ask me to rationalize it. Goblin, you've been everywhere.
You ever seen a religion that can't be picked to shreds by any nonbeliever with
brains enough to tie his own bootlaces?"
Goblin
shrugged. "You're as cynical as Croaker was." "Yeah? Good for
me. Anyway, there's a lot of typically murky mythological stuff about mothers
and fathers and vicious, hideous, probably incestuous carryings-on amongst the
other gods while Kina kept getting stronger. She was real sneaky. That's one of
her attributes. Deceit. But then her main creator, or father, tricked her and
put a sleep spell on her. She's still snoring away somewhere but she can touch
our world through her dreams.
"She's
got her worshippers. All Gunni deities do. Big, little, good, bad, indifferent,
they all have their temples and priesthoods. I can't find out much about Kina's
followers. They're called Deceivers. The soldiers won't talk about them. They
flat refuse, like naming Kina might actually waken her. Which, I gather, is the
holy mission of her worshippers." "Too weird for me," Bucket
grumbled. Goblin said, "That explains why Lady scares the shit out of
everybody whenever she dresses up. If they really think she's turned into this
goddess."
"I
figure we should find out everything we can about this Kina."
"Crack
plan, Murgen. How? If nobody will talk?" Yeah. Even the boldest Taglians
threatened to get the vapors if I pressed. It was obvious that they were not
just terrified of this goddess. They were scared of me, too.
One-Eye
brought heartening news. "This stuff about the relief force is gold, boss.
Every night now Spinner is sneaking troops out through the hills like he don't
think we can see them go if it's dark."
"Could
he be giving up the siege?"
"The
troops are all headed north. Home ain't north."
I did
not offer another alternative. One-Eye would not have come if he was not sure.
Of
course, One-Eye being sure never meant that One-Eye was right. He was One-Eye.
I
thanked him, sent him to do a small chore, found Goblin and asked him what he
thought. The little wizard seemed surprised I would bother. "Did One-Eye
stutter or something?"
"No.
But he's One-Eye."
Goblin
could not contain his big frog grin. That made perfect sense to him.
Nobody
relayed the news to Mogaba. I thought it would go easier for everybody if he
didn't know. But Mogaba heard rumors, too.
Dejagore
was a nightmare town filled with factions only loosely united in defiance of
the besiegers. Mogaba's forces were the strongest. The Jaicuri were most
numerous. We Old Crew, with our auxiliaries, were less numerous and less
powerful. But boy were we strong in our righteousness.
And
then there were the Nyueng Bao. The Nyueng Bao remained an enigma.
43
Ky Dam's
family occupied the same dismal, filthy, smoky, pungent hole until the deluge
drove them out. The perquisites of power did not appeal to the Speaker. He had
a place to get out of the rain. That was enough.
Maybe
that was more than he had had back in the swamp.
He did
share with a troop of descendants who stopped bickering only when the outsider
came around. And then the children restrained themselves only for a while.
On
successive afternoons Ky Dam summoned me to consult on trivial matters. We faced
each other over tea served by the beautiful granddaughter while the children
quickly lost their awe of me and resumed brawling. We traded information on
friends and enemies. That fevered character in the shadows moaned and groaned.
I did
not like that. He was dying. But he was taking a long, long time getting it
done. Every time he cried out the beautiful one went to him. I ached in
sympathy. She was so haggard.
Second
visit I said something to indicate sympathy, one of those things you toss off without
much thought. Ky Dam's wife, whom I now knew to be named Hong Tray, glanced up
from her tea, startled. She said three soft words to Ky Dam.
The old
man nodded. "Thank you for your concern, Stone Soldier, but it is
misplaced. Danh welcomed a devil into his soul. Now he pays the due."
A burst
of rapid, liquid Nyueng Bao erupted from the shadows. A squat old woman waddled
into the light. She was bow-legged, ugly as a warthog, in a vicious humor. She
barked at me. She was Ky Gota, the Speaker's daughter and my shadow Thai Dei's
mother. She was a dark legend among her own people. I have no idea what she was
on about but I got the feeling that she laid all the ills of the world squarely
at my feet.
Ky Dam
said something gently. It did not get through. Hong Tray repeated his words,
more gently, in a whisper. Silence fell instantly. Ky Gota scurried into the
shadows.
The
Speaker offered, "In all our lives we enjoy successes and failures. My
great sorrow is my daughter Gota. She has within her a cancer of agony she
cannot conquer. She insists on sharing it with the rest of us." A tiny
smile touched his lips. This was self-deprecating humor, meant to inform me
that he was speaking metaphorically. "Her great failure, the wellspring of
heartbreak for all of us, was her hasty choice of Sam Danh Qu as the husband
for her daughter." He indicated the beautiful flower. The flower betrayed
a blush as she knelt to refill our cups. There was no doubt that all these
people understood Taglian perfectly.
Ky Dam
added, "That is the one great error that Gota cannot deny, a culmination
of deficiencies that is like a brand. She was widowed young. She arranged the
marriage hoping to enjoy her elder years luxuriating on the wealth of the
Sams." The Speaker showed me that little smile again, probably sensing my
incredulity. Wealth and Nyueng Bao are contradictory concepts. The old man
continued, "Danh was clever. He concealed the fact that he had been
disinherited because of his cruelty and wickedness and treachery. Gota was too
much in a hurry to investigate harsh rumors. And Danh's evil only grew worse
after the nuptials. But that is enough about me and mine. I asked you here
because I wish to keep an eye on the character of the leader of the Bone
Warriors."
I had to
ask. "Why do you call us that? Does it mean anything?"
Ky Dam
traded looks with his wife. I sighed. "I get it. It's more of the Black
Company claptrap everybody does. You think we're something our predecessors
were supposed to have been four hundred years ago, only probably weren't
because oral history exaggerates ridiculously. Speaker, listen. The Black
Company is just a gang of outcasts. Really. We're plain old mercenary soldiers
caught up in circumstances we don't understand and really don't like. We're
just passing through. We came this way because our Captain has a bug up his ass
about the Company's history. Most of the rest of us couldn't think of anything
else we wanted to do more." I told him about Silent and Darling and others
who had parted with the brotherhood rather than hazard the long journey south.
"I promise you, whatever scares everybody-and I wish somebody would tell
me what that is-it would have to involve way more work than I'm willing to put
into anything."
The old
man eyed, me, glanced at his wife. She said and did nothing but something
passed between them. Ky Dam nodded.
Uncle
Doj materialized. The Speaker told me, "Perhaps we misjudge you. Even I
allow prejudice to guide me at times. There is a chance I will know better when
next we speak."
Uncle
Doj made a small gesture. Time for me to leave.
44
Goblin
caught me hitting the Jaicuri books. "Murgen!" I started.
"Huh?"
"About
goddamn time."
"What?
What're you talking about?"
"I
been standing here watching you for ten minutes. You never turned a page. You
never blinked an eye. I couldn't tell if you was breathing."
I
started to make an excuse.
"Won't
sell. I had to yell four times and slap you on the back of the head to get your
attention."
"So
I was thinking." Only I could not recall even one thought.
"Yeah.
Right. Mogaba wants your scrawny ass over to the citadel."
"A
lot of southerners have sneaked off to meet this relief column," I told
Mogaba. "At first I thought they were trying to trick us. Pull back and
hit us when we tried to take advantage. But Goblin and One-Eye promise me
they've just kept going. There can't be a relief army, though. Where would the
soldiers come from? Who would lead them?" Would Mogaba believe that I had
not heard the more interesting rumors? He heard more than I did. And Croaker's
survival probably figured in a lot of those.
What
would he do if the Old Man turned up alive?
I was
pretty sure Mogaba thought about that a lot.
I was
thanked and told to return to my people with no other comment. I did not find
out why he sent for me.
Mogaba
did just what I feared. He launched a recon in force, maybe trying to find new
weak spots. He employed only his own most trustworthy men. And I was content to
sit atop my part of the wall, watching. And wondering why Mogaba was so sure we
would desert if we got outside.
I tend
to ignore Mogaba here. He was a much greater part of everyday life than I show.
He was misery on the hoof. My dislike makes it impossible to write about the
man rationally so I discuss him only when I must.
Of all
the Nar, in those days, only Sindawe ever made the effort to be civil.
Anyway,
Mogaba thought he had a chance to hurt the Shadowmaster but the planners
outside were getting the hang of how his head worked. He did not let a lack of
success discourage him. There was that about Mogaba. He never became
discouraged. No setback ever shook his conviction that he was invincible. If
his plans fizzled he just recalculated.
Mogaba's
soldiers began to desert without benefit of escape from the city, coming to
hide out with friends among our Taglians. They complained that Mogaba was too
profligate with soldiers' lives.
Mogaba
responded by ordering special rations and preferential access to prostitutes
for his most dedicated men.
We
found those sealed jars of grain left over from the Shadowmasters' first siege.
Whether to share generated considerable debate. One-Eye insisted that Mogaba
would not be satisfied just to share. He would want to know all about our find.
He would want to see for himself. Did we want him wandering around our warrens?
No.
So what
does the little shit do? He turns right around and starts selling fresh-baked
bread for twenty times what a loaf cost before the siege.
I found
a nice quiet spot for just One-Eye and me, atop the wall on a lazy afternoon.
There were fresh rumors of a battle up north but that was not our topic. I
asked, "What did you tell me about why we shouldn't let Mogaba share the
stores we found?"
"Huh?"
This was not the hassle he expected.
"You
were extremely persuasive. All that stuff about not letting the man get into
our hideout."
He
grinned, proud of himself. "So?"
"You
stand by what you said?"
"Sure."
"Then
what the fuck are you doing selling his men bread when we're not supposed to
have no grain to grind for flour?"
He
frowned. The connection eluded him. "Making a profit?"
"You
really figure Mogaba is so stupid he won't notice that bread? You really figure
he won't ask questions?"
"You got too rigid a way of looking at
things, Kid."
"You
keep up your crap you're really going to think rigid. You get me killed I'm
going to haunt your ass forever."
"You
probably would. There's times I think you're halfway a haunt already."
"What's
that supposed to mean?"
"These
spells you have. When you have them it's like there's somebody else looking out
from behind your eyes. It's like there's some other soul swirling around
you."
"I
never noticed." Would I notice?
"If
we had us a skilled necromancer or a spirit talker we might be surprise what we
found. You wasn't born twins, was you?" His stare was fierce.
A chill
stalked my spine. The hairs on my neck stirred. I did feel spooky, sometimes.
But he was just trying to change the subject.
Goblin
joined us uninvited. "There's something going on with the Shadowlanders,
Murgen."
A crow
nearby made a sound like laughter. I asked, "They aren't setting up for
another big attack? I thought Mogaba screwed their main ramp."
"I
couldn't get close enough to catch any details. Mogaba is staying out where
people can see him. But I think there was a battle. And I think Shadowspinner's
creeps got whipped. We may have friends out there ready to bust us out."
"Calm down. Don't start packing your gear." One-Eye snickered.
"That's the runt all over, counting his chickens when he ain't even stole
no eggs yet."
I
grumbled, "You remember what we were just discussing? Stupid moves? And
you'd dare get down on Goblin?" Of course he would. That was his great
mission. "What's going on?" Goblin demanded. Uncle Doj materialized.
His presence ended the discussion. That man could be spookier than any shade,
he moved so fast and quiet. "Speaker says tell you southerners carrying
tools instead of weapons are assembling south of the city."
"And
what's that over there?" From our perch most of the activity was hidden
behind the curve of the wall but it looked like a big engineering party had
begun to gather north of the city as well. "You see any prisoners or
slaves out there ... ? Huh?
What's
that?"
That
was the sparkle of sunlight off metal in the hills. The sparkle repeated
itself. People were moving out there, not carefully enough.
Shadowspinner's
men had no need to sneak. I told Goblin, "Pass the word. Full alert come
sundown."
Uncle
Doj considered the hills. "You have good eyes, Bone Warrior."
"Know
something, Stubby? I'd a whole lot rather be called Murgen."
The
squat man smiled thinly. "As you wish, Murgen. I have come on behalf of
the Speaker. He says tell you hard times are coming. He says prepare your
hearts and minds."
"Hard
times?"
One-Eye
laughed. "The party is over, Kid. Now we got to pay for loafing around and
getting fat while the hour is slithered all over us."
"Keep
it in mind next time you're tempted to do some profiteering."
"Huh?"
"You
can't eat money, One-Eye."
"Killjoy."
"That's
me all over. Tell Wheezer to hike over to the citadel and tell Sindawe the
southerners are up to something." Sindawe might be all right. I could talk
to him without having to conquer an urge to squeeze his throat. And this would
cover me on keeping Mogaba informed.
What
would happen if the Shadowmaster just up and walked away, leaving us to sort
ourselves out?
Sounded
like the smart thing for him to do.
45
Wheezer
barely made it to the top. Then he spent five minutes hacking and wheezing
before he could talk. That old man had no business soldiering at his age. He
ought to be off living off his grandchildren. But like the rest of us he had
nothing outside the Company. He would die under the deathshead standard. Under
what passed for a standard today.
It was
sad. Pathetic, even.
Wheezer
was an anomaly. Usually the mercenary life is brutal and short, pain and fear
and misery only occasionally interrupted by a fleeting moment of pleasure. What
keeps you sane is the unfailing comradeship of your brethren. In this company.
In
lesser bands. . . . But they are not the Black Company.
Croaker
and I both put a lot of effort into sustaining that brotherhood. In fact, it
looked like time to resurrect Croaker's habit of readings from the Annals so
the men would remember that they were part of something more enduring than most
kingdoms.
I told
Wheezer, "You better take a couple hours off."
He
shook his head. He would go on the best he could until he could go on no more.
"The Nar lieutenant. Sindawe. Sends greetings. He said we better look out
tonight."
"He
mention why?"
"He
sort of hinted . . . that Mogaba might try ... some big stunt after . . .
dark."
Mogaba
was always trying some big stunt. Shadowspinner ought to let him set himself
up. One raid too many, at the wrong time, and Mogaba would find out personally
why Spinner was called a Shadowmaster.
Wheezer
said something in his native tongue. Only One-Eye understood him. Sounded like
a question. One-Eye muttered a few clicky syllables in reply. I figured the old
man wanted to know if it was all right to talk in front of the Nyueng Bao.
One-Eye gave him the go ahead.
Wheezer
said, "Sindawe said tell you guys the rumors about a big battle are
probably true."
"We
owe Sindawe, guys," I said. "That sounds to me like him telling us he
won't back Mogaba a hundred percent anymore."
Thai
Dei and Uncle Doj sucked up our conversation like Nyueng Bao sponges.
Tension
built for hours. With no real evidence we began to feel this night would be
critical. Mostly the guys worried about new Hastinesses from Mogaba. We didn't
expect trouble from the Shadowmaster any time soon.
I kept
an eye on the hills.
One-Eye
snapped, "There it is!" He shared my anticipations. Pinkish light
flared. Lightning crackled around a bizarre rider.
"She's
back," somebody said. "Where's the other one?"
I did
not see a Widowmaker right away.
Panic
swept the plain. The apparition had taken the scattered Shadowlander camps
unawares. Sergeants shrieked orders. Messengers galloped around. Soldiers
stumbled into one another.
"There
he is!" Bucket yelled. "There who is?"
"Widowmaker."
He pointed. "The Old Man." The Widowmaker figure shimmered back in
the hills, larger than life.
Goblin
grabbed my arm. I don't know where he came from. "Look over there."
He indicated the Shadowlander main camp. We could not see the camp itself but a
pale, gangrenous glow rose from its approximate location. The light intensified
steadily.
"Spinner
wants to play," I observed.
"Yeah.
He's sending a big one."
"A
big what? Do we need to get our heads down?"
"Wait
and see."
I
waited. And I saw. A nasty ball of green fire streaked toward the hills. It hit
near where Lifetaker first showed herself. Earth flew. Stone burned. All to no
avail. Lifetaker was long gone.
"He
missed."
"What
an eye!"
"Lifetaker
didn't play fair. She didn't stand still."
"He
made a stupid choice of tools," One-Eye sneered. "You can't expect
somebody to just hang around and wait for you."
"Maybe
that was his best go. He hasn't been healthy."
I
sidled away. In a few minutes Goblin and One-Eye would start bickering.
The
confusion on the plain worsened. The southerners were more rattled than seemed
reasonable. What I could get from their chatter suggested that they had been
caught just starting something big of their own and their disarray left them
virtually unable to defend themselves. In hushed tones, too, I heard Kina
mentioned.
Lifetaker,
who resembled that goddess of corruption, vanished. Maybe she lost interest.
She did not reappear. Shadowspinner pasted the hills with any sorcery he could
slap together. Other than starting a few brush fires he had no obvious impact.
The fox
was in the henyard. Southerners scooted all over, their panic feeding on the
panic of others. When one got close my guys took turns sniping. Goblin said,
"They keep cussing about their feet getting wet." I heard that, too.
It made no sense.
"Holy
shit!"
I don't
know who said it but I could not have agreed more.
Scores
of brilliant white fireballs erupted straight up above the Shadowlander main
camp. They obliterated the darkness completely. They seemed a tool of more use
to a Shadowmaster's enemies than to the villain himself.
A huge
uproar followed.
Uncle
Doj vanished. One moment he was beside me, the next a shadow running through
the street below, then gone.
One-Eye
told me, "This time I'm sure it's Lady."
His
tone alerted me. "But what?"
"But
the other one ain't the Captain."
Widowmaker
had been visible for less than one minute. "Tell me it ain't so," I
muttered.
"What?"
"That
we got two sets. Each one only half the real thing."
A crow
nearby cackled.
I
asked, "What kind of sorcery would do that? Split them in two?"
"I
wish I could tell you something you want to hear, Kid. But I've got a very bad
feeling there's stuff going on we don't even want to know about."
46
One-Eye
was a prophet. Although I did want to know. And thanks to the Nyueng Bao I
heard a story.
The
light across town faded. The attendant racket subsided. Part of that drifted toward
the hills. The rest fell back toward Mogaba's part of town.
The
crackle of small sorceries rippled across the plain. The whole expanse
glistened silver. "That was a strange one. One-Eye, what say we build a
watchtower on top of one of the enfilading towers? That way we could get high
enough to see what Mogaba and Spinner are doing."
"You
got Nyueng Bao to spy for you over there."
"Suppose
I don't ask you to do any work yourself?"
"The
idea sounds a lot better already. But I still think the Nyueng Bao could be
your eyes, you play it right. You don't need to get as paranoid as Croaker.
Just look at what they bring you so you see whose purpose it might serve.
Consider what might be missing the same way."
"Sometimes
I'm as lazy as you are," I told One-Eye. "Only with me it's mental.
That sounds like a lot of thinking. And I'd rather see stuff with my own eyes
anyway."
"Just
like the Old Man," he grumbled. "You got to read them Annals all the
time, how about you read some that was written by somebody besides Croaker? I
was looking forward to a little relief from his righteousness."
So we
were back to the black-market bread scheme.
Goblin
turned up. "Pretty exciting stuff happening over there."
"Yeah?
Like what?"
"I
got up on the wall over there. For a while. Mogaba's guys weren't worried about
getting caught letting me peek. He led this raid in person."
"Just
tell us about it," One-Eye grumbled. "You all the time got to flap on
about stuff that. . . Awk!" A huge bug landed in One-Eye's mouth. Goblin's
smirk hinted that he might have been involved in the insect's errant
navigation.
"That
Doj character can tell you more than me. Some of his guys snuck out there
behind Mogaba's gang."
"Why?"
"I
think Mogaba was trying to bushwhack Spinner. But he stumbled into Lady
instead." "You're shitting me."
"When
that bunch of flareballs went up? There she was. Her and about fifteen guys.
They were right outside the camp gate, practically crawling over Mogaba's mob.
Least that's what I heard. I didn't see it myself." "So where's Uncle
Doj?" "Probably checking in with the Speaker." Probably.
"Yeah? Look, we've got a bunch of deserters from the First. See if some
will sneak back to find out more." "Here comes chunky boy now."
We talked
right in front of Thai Dei, like he was deaf. Or like we didn't care squat what
he heard.
Uncle
Doj brought a couple other Nyueng Bao. They surrounded another chunky boy, this
one a wide little Taglian. He seemed more prisoner than companion though no
weapons were in evidence.
It
amazed me that Uncle Doj could climb to the ramparts without breathing hard.
Maybe he used some wild sorcerery that stole Wheezer's breath.
That
sounded like something out of the Gunni myth book. "What have you got, Uncle?"
I stared at the squat Taglian. He was indifferent to my gaze.
"An
outsider. The Speaker sent Banh and Binh to watch the black men, who wanted to
attack the Shadowmaster himself. But they ran into others from the outside
pursuing a similar goal. This one left his party and joined those running for
the wall when the flares went up. The outsider group may have been betrayed
intentionally so this one could become separated in the confusion."
I
continued to study the outsider. He was a Gunni, more stockily built than
anyone in these parts. Maybe he worked at that. He seemed possessed of a
powerful arrogance.
I
asked, "Is there anything special about him?" Uncle Doj seemed
strongly interested in him, too.
"He
bears the mark of Khadi."
That took
a moment. Oh. Yeah. In the books from the catacombs. Khadi was an alternate or
regional name for Kina. There were quite a few of those. "If you say so. I
don't see it myself. Point it out."
Uncle
Doj's eyes narrowed. He drew a deep breath, exasperated. "Even now you
refuse to reveal yourself, Soldier of Darkness?"
"Even
now I don't have any fucking idea what you're raving about. I am tired of
hearing it." I was developing suspicions, though. "Instead of
sputtering and fussing and offering cryptic grumbles why don't you say
something I can understand? Pretend I'm what I say I am and can't call down the
lightning to part your hair. Who is this guy? Who do you think I am? Come on,
Uncle. Talk to me."
"He
is a slave of Khadi." Uncle Doj glared at me, daring me not to understand
that. He did not want to be more explicit.
That
made no sense to me. But I am not a superstitious man. Did he believe his one
mouth had the power to raise the she-devil alone? "Kina must be one badass
bitch," I told One-Eye. "She's got Uncle drizzling down his leg. You.
You got a name?"
"I
am Sindhu. I am of the staff of the warrior woman you call Lady. I was sent to
observe the situation here." He continued to meet my gaze. His eyes were
colder than any lizard's.
"Sounds
reasonable enough." If taken with a block of salt. "Lady? This is the
Lady who was second in command in the Black Company?"
"That
Lady. The goddess has smiled upon her."
I asked
Uncle Doj, "Is he a liaison man, then? Between us and Lady?"
"He
may tell you so. But he is a spy for the toog. He will not speak truth when a
lie will do."
"Uncle,
old buddy, you and me and the old man need to sit down and try to talk the same
language for a while. What do you think?"
Uncle
Doj grunted. Which could mean anything. "The toog will not speak truth
when a lie will do." Sindhu was amused.
The man
struck me as a complete false face. I said, "Goblin, find this guy some
place to sleep." I shifted languages. "And don't let him out of your
sight." "I have chores enough already."
"Somebody's
sight. All right? I don't like him at all. I don't think I'm going to like him
even this much tomorrow morning. He smells like trouble."
One-Eye
agreed. "Big trouble."
"Why
don't we just chuck his hairy ass off the wall, then?" Goblin can be
pragmatic in the extreme.
"Because
I want to find out more about him. I think we've crawled right up to the edge
of the mystery that has hung us up ever since we got here. Let him run free.
We'll play dumb and keep track of every breath he takes." I was sure I
could count on the Speaker's help with that.
My two
wizards scowled and grumbled. Hard to blame them. They always end up carrying
the load.
47
I was
snoring heroically down deep in our warrens, having gone to Nod confident I
could sleep in. Tomorrow nobody would have the ambition to get up to any
mischief.
I was
down there so far and so far out of the way that not five people knew where to
find me. I was on a mission to catch up on my sleep. If the end of the world
came the guys could celebrate without me.
Somebody
shook me.
I
refused to believe it. It had to be a bad dream.
"Murgen.
Come on. You got to come see this."
No I
didn't.
"Murgen!"
I
cracked an eyelid. "I'm trying to get some sleep here, Bucket. Go
away."
"You
ain't got time. You got to come see."
"I
got to come see what?"
"You'll
see. Come on."
There
would be no winning this. He would pester me till I lost my temper, then get
his feelings hurt. But the long climb to the sunshine was not an inducement to
rise.
"All
right. All right." I got up and got myself together.
They
didn't need to drag me out but I understood the impulse. Things had changed.
Radically.
I
stared at the plain, mouth open. Only, what plain? Dejagore was surrounded by a
shallow lake that featured the tops of burial mounds as small islands. Each
mound boasted its handful of disconsolate animals. "How deep is it?"
I asked. And, "There any chance we can catch some of those critters for
the pot?" With all that water down there no southerner would be guarding
against sorties.
"Right
now, five feet," Goblin said. "I had men go down and measure."
"Is
it still coming up? Where is it coming from? Where is Shadowspinner?"
Goblin
pointed. "I don't know about Spinner, but there's the water. Still coming
in."
I have
good eyes. I made out the water boiling and foaming as it roared out of the
hills. "The old aqueduct came down there, didn't it?" Two major
canals had irrigated the hill farms and fed aqueducts to Dejagore before the
fighting started. The Company cut those when the southerners were on the
inside. Now the city survived on rainwater and the contents of large, deep,
very stagnant cisterns we knew nothing about back then.
"Exactly.
Clete and his brothers figure they diverted the entire river into the canal.
Same thing south of town."
Dejagore
sits on a plain below the level of the country beyond the hills. Modest rivers
run both west and southeast of the hills.
"I
presume the boys are studying the engineering aspects?" I asked.
"Them
and three dozen Taglians who had some skills the guys could use."
"Any
conclusions yet?"
"Like?"
"Like
how high will the water get? Are we going to drown?" If that was
Shadowspinner's plan it indicated major changes in his thinking. Before, he
wanted Dejagore recovered intact. This seemed a more practical and final answer
to his problems, though more destructive of property-which, of course, was more
valuable than any number of lives.
"They're
trying to figure that out right now." I grunted. "I take it Spinner
pulled out after Lady left." "No," One-Eye responded. "They
hung around to swim. They don't get to a lot of beach parties where they come
from." "Man's not as stupid as we thought," I mused.
"Huh?"
"He
floods the plain, even if he don't drown us he locks us up so tight he don't
have to use hardly any men to keep us under control. He can chase Lady all he
wants. We can't help her and she can't help us. For him it's better than getting
reinforcements out of the Shadowlands. Longshadow's soldiers couldn't be
trusted behind his back."
Thai
Dei showed up. He always turned up soon after I came out, which indicated how
closely we were being watched.
Thai
Dei was a waste of manpower. He didn't carry many messages. He didn't
understand any of our languages well enough to be a good spy for the Speaker.
But he was always, always just a few steps away.
There
would be a reason. The Speaker would do nothing without consideration. I just
did not grasp his view of the world.
The
longer I stared at the flood the more questions I came up with that needed
answers soon. Most critical? How high would the water rise? How long would it
take to do so? The rate of rise would slow down substantially as each vertical
foot required more water volume because of the fall back of the hills,
evaporation from the larger surface area, and absorption by more covered soil.
I told
Goblin and One-Eye, "Dig up every educated man in town and give him to the
brothers." I thought about building boats and heightening towers and
securing stores. I thought about our vast and wonderful warrens and the
likelihood that thousands of manhours would go for naught. I thought about how
we would have to prepare ourselves mentally for lots worse if we were going to
survive. I thought about Ky Dam and his talk of hard times to come.
Thai
Dei stepped over when nobody else was near. "Grandfather would speak with
you. Soon, if possible." His manners were impeccable. He did not call me
Stone Soldier even once.
The old
man must want something badly. "As you wish." I noticed the outsider
Sindhu on the battlements off toward the Western gate. I could feel him
watching me. "One-Eye."
"What?"
"You
don't need to bark. If you want to bark I'll see if I can't have the
Shadowmaster turn you into a dog."
One-Eye
was startled. "Huh?"
"You
guys keeping an eye on our guest?"
"Geek
and Freak are taking turns. He ain't done much yet. Wandered around town.
Talked to people. Tried visiting with the Taglians, here and over with Mogaba.
Ours wouldn't have anything to do with him. The al-Khul Company ran him off
With their swords drawn."
"Would
anybody talk about him?"
One-Eye
shook his head. "It's the same old shit. Maybe even worse. You better make
it clear him being here wasn't your idea."
Thai
Dei, listening, murmured something that sounded cabalistic. He followed with a
gesture resembling that meant to avert the evil eye.
"Hey,"
One-Eye said. "Something can bother these guys after all."
"I'm
going to go listen to their boss talk. You're in charge, but only because
everybody else around here is less trustworthy than you."
"Thanks
a shitload, Kid. You make a guy feel like he's on top of the world."
"Try
to have something left when I get back."
48
The
vertigo hit me in the same alleyway as before-just yesterday? I remembered it
as the darkness closed in. This was more of a sneaking, gentle, enveloping
blackness than the thunderbolts that got me before.
My
thoughts scrambled but I did recall several minimal episodes since the big
blackout, just moments when I was out of my head and I came back as soon as
somebody said something.
This
one was stronger. Thai Dei's hands closed on my left bicep. He spoke but his
words were sounds that had no meaning. The light faded. My knees went watery.
Then there was no sensation at all.
There
was a place that was brighter than day, although it was daytime. Huge mirrors
gathered sunlight and splashed it onto one tall, gaunt individual in black. The
gaunt man stood upon a windswept parapet high above a darkening land.
A
scream ripped through the air. A dark rectangle slanted toward the tower from
high above and far away.
The
gaunt figure fitted a stylized mask to its face. Its breathing increased pace,
as though it needed more air to face visitors. Another scream tore the air. The
gaunt man muttered, "Someday . . . ! The ragged flying carpet settled a
short distance away. The masked man remained motionless, glaring at every hint
of shadow around the device. The wind tugged at his robe.
Three
persons rode the flying carpet. One was a tiny thing bundled in dark, stinking
rags crumbling with mildew. He was masked, too, and shook continuously. He
could not control the occasional scream. He was the Howler, one of the world's
oldest and most wicked sorcerers. The carpet was his creation. The gaunt man
hated him.
The
gaunt man hated everybody. He had little love for himself. He mastered his
hatreds for short periods only, entirely through the implacable exercise of
will. He had a powerful will as long as he was not threatened physically. The
ragball gurgled as it stifled a scream. Howler's nearest companion was a short,
skinny, filthy little man in a ragged loincloth and grubby turban. He was
frightened. His name was Narayan Singh, living saint of the Deceiver cult,
alive only because of Howler's intercession.
Longshadow
considered Singh less than a flop of buffalo dung. Nevertheless, he had
potential as a tool. The reach of his cult was long and lethal.
Singh's
opinion of his own new ally was of no supreme elevation, either.
Beyond
Singh was a child, a pretty little thing, though filthier than the jamadar. She
had huge brown eyes. Eyes like the windows of hell. Eyes that knew all evil of
old and would revel in it now and forever more.
Those
eyes troubled even Longshadow.
They
were whirlpools of darkness that pulled, pulled, twisted, hypnotized. . . .
A
sudden, sharp pain in my left knee sent wires of agony searing through my
flesh. I groaned. I shook my head. The stink of an alleyway penetrated my
awareness. I seemed blind. But my eyes, apparently, were adapted to brilliant
sunlight. Hands gripped my left arm, pulling, lifting. My vision began to
return.
I
looked up.
A gaunt
face looked back, startling me. I retained a legacy of fear from my vision,
though what that had been was fading already. I tried to hang on but the pain
in my knee and Thai Dei talking shattered my concentration.
"I'm
all right," I said. "Just hurt my knee." I tried to stand. When
I took a step the knee almost folded. "I'll manage, damn it!" I
pushed his hands away.
The
vision was gone except for a memory that it had happened.
Had it
been the same with my other blackouts? Were there visions that flew away so
thoroughly that I could not recall having had them? Did they have any
connection with reality? Vaguely, I recalled seeing lots of familiar faces.
I would
discuss it with Goblin and One-Eye. They ought to know what to make of it. They
picked up a little loose change interpreting dreams.
Thai
Dei started gabbling the moment we entered the Speaker's presence. Ky Dam
considered me speculatively, his expression deepening oddly as Thai Dei
chattered.
The old
man appeared to be alone when we walked in but as Thai Dei talked and Ky Dam
became unusually attentive other Nyueng Bao came out of the shadows to study
me. Hong Tray and Ky Gota were the first. The old woman settled by her husband.
Ky Dam said, "I hope you do not mind. Sometimes she is able to part the
veil of time."
Gota
said nothing. I suspected that that was unusual.
The
beautiful woman appeared. She got right onto the tea service business. Tea is a
big thing with the Nyueng Bao. Did she serve any other function in the family?
The guy
in the shadows wasn't moaning and groaning today. Had he left us?
"Not
yet," the Speaker said, reading my glance. "But soon." Again, he
sensed a question. "We sustain our share of the marriage vow even though
he betrayed his. We will stand before the Judges of Time without stain on our
karma."
I had a
notion what he meant only because I was studying the Jaicuri scriptures.
"You are a good people."
Ky Dam
was amused. "Some might argue. We do strive to be an honorable folk."
"I
understand." We so strive in the Black Company."
"Excellent."
"I
came because Thai Dei said you want to talk."
"I
did."
I
waited. My gaze kept straying to the woman making tea.
"Standardbearer."
I
started. . . . "No," I said softly, unaware that I was speaking
aloud. I had not fallen into one of those black fugues. I'd just become
distracted momentarily. Couldn't blame a man for that. Not with a woman like
that to distract him.
I said,
"Thank you, Speaker. For not labelling me with one of those unappealing
names you tend to employ."
I could
not resist a small smile that told him I knew he wanted something badly enough
to keep me in a generous mood.
He
nodded in turn, acknowledging my awareness.
Damn. I
was turning into an old man myself. Maybe we could sit here grinning and
grunting and nodding and arrange the whole future of the world. "Thank
you," I said when the pretty woman presented my tea.
That
surprised her. She looked me in the eye for a moment, startling me. Her eyes
were green. She neither smiled nor acknowledged me in any other way.
"Remarkable,"
I said, to nobody in particular. "Green eyes." Then I controlled
myself and waited while the Speaker sipped some tea before he started circling in
on his problem.
He told
me, "Green eyes are rare and greatly admired among Nyueng Bao." He
took a ritual sip. "Hong Tray may part the veil occasionally but her
visions are not always true, or not always fixed. Or they may be visions that
have not yet come to pass. She does not see recognizable people so it is hard
to determine when the visions might be taking place."
"Uhm?"
The woman in question sat with eyes downcast, slowly turning a jade bracelet
that hung loose upon her left wrist. Her eyes were green, too.
"She
foresaw the flood. We believed that would prove to be a false vision because we
could imagine no way so much water could be brought to Jaicur."
"But
we're in the middle of a lake now. The world's widest moat. The Shadowlanders
won't bother us anymore."
It took
the old man a minute to understand that I was not serious. "Oh." He
chuckled. Hong Tray looked up and smiled. She had gotten the joke first.
"I see. Yes. But it will serve the Shadowmaster, not us. Any attempt to
leave will require rafts or boats, easily spotted, which cannot move enough men
to force a breakthrough."
The old
boy was a general, too.
"You
got it." Shadowspinner had found an ingenious solution to his manpower
problem. Now he could challenge Lady confident that we would not jump on his
back.
"The
reason I wished to confer is that in her vision Hong Tray saw the water rise to
within ten feet of the battlements." "That would make seventy feet of
water." I glanced at the old woman. She seemed to be studying me in a way
that had nothing to do with curiosity. "That's a shitload."
"There is another problem." "Which is?" "We tried to
calculate how many structures will rise above the waterline."
"Oh-oh.
I see." I saw. Dejagore enjoyed a vertically oriented architecture, as
walled cities do, but not many buildings overtopped the wall. And most
surviving structures, even many that were partially burned, were occupied by
someone. There would not be much housing available if the city flooded.
Luckily
for us Old Crew our quarter boasted a lot of tall tenements.
"Oh-oh
indeed. In this area there are enough such structures to house our few
pilgrims. But elsewhere it will go hard for the Jaicuri when the black men and
their soldiers finally understand how much space they will need."
"No
doubt." I thought a moment. Hell. People could camp out on the wall. Them
getting in the way would not be a problem militarily.
Still,
whatever we did, life would become pure hell if the water rose that high.
"Presents a dilemma, doesn't it?"
"Possibly
a larger dilemma than you suspect."
"How
so?"
"If
preparations are not initiated immediately much that might prove useful will be
lost. But if you tell Mogaba this then it is likely the strong will rob the
weak and leave them to suffer. There is now no need to exercise restraint
because of potential attack."
"I
see." Actually, I had foreseen the scramble for stores and high ground.
But I did overlook the fact that Shadowspinner extricating himself also freed
Mogaba to manage internal frictions in a manner more to his liking. "You
have something in mind?"
"I
wish to examine the possibility of a temporary alliance. Until Jaicur is
relieved."
"Has
Hong Tray foreseen that as well?"
"No."
I was
surprised by the black despair that collapsed upon me.
"She
has seen nothing one way or the other."
I
brightened. A very little.
"I
am reluctant to undertake such an obligation," Ky Dam confessed. "It
was not my idea. It was Sahra's." He indicated the beautiful tea server.
"But she trusts you for no reason she will explain and, moreover, her
arguments make sense."
Hong
Tray wore a bemused expression. There was, in the way she looked at me, a hint
that she foresaw much that she did not share.
I
shivered.
Ky Dam
continued, "We have no hope if we assume a traditional Nyueng Bao stance
and depend upon ourselves alone. You have little hope if your Mogaba does not
feel he needs your arms anymore."
I
stared at the beautiful one, though that was bad manners. She blushed. The
attraction was so powerful, suddenly, that I gasped. I felt as though I had
known her several lifetimes already.
What
the . . . ? This did not happen to me. Not anymore, anyway. I was no
sixteen-year-old.... Hell, I never felt like this when I was sixteen.
My soul
was trying to tell me I knew this woman as well as a man ever knew any woman
when, in truth, I had only just heard her name spoken for the first time.
There
was something else over there, with her. That was more than one lovely
daydream. I knew another one just like her, somewhere else. . . .
The
darkness came.
It was
sudden and absolute and I had no time to decide if I was running away or being
pulled down.
49
There
was a long, long time in the dreamless dark. A time without an I. A time
neither warm nor cold, a time with no happiness or fear or pain in a place no
tortured soul would want to leave. But a pin pricked a hole in the envelope.
The tiniest thread of light found its way in and fell upon an imaginary eye.
Movement.
A rush
toward a point, which swelled and became a passageway into a world of time and
matter and pain.
I knew
who I was. I staggered under the crushing weight of a host of congruent
memories surfacing all at once.
A Voice
spoke to me but I could not comprehend its words. I floated like gossamer
through golden caverns where old men sat beside the way, frozen in time,
immortal but unable to move an eyelid. Madmen, they, some were covered with
fairy webs of ice as though a thousand winter spiders had spun threads of
frozen water. Above, an enchanted forest of icicles grew downward from the
cavern ceiling.
Because
I had memories of memories within memories I recalled having read words very
much like those somewhere in something I did not believe had yet been written.
"Come!"
The
power of the call was like the punch of a thunderbolt.
Darkness
came. I tumbled away, ceased being I. Nevertheless, before I faded from that
cavern I sensed a startled presence coming alert and striving to direct its
attention my way.
Somehow
I had gone somewhere where no mortal was welcome to travel and still come away.
Memory
fled. But pain went along on the journey.
50
Light
in the darkness, again. I began to be I, though without a name. I shied from
the light. The light was not a pleasant place. The pain would be waiting. But
something farther beneath my surface turned to the light like a drowning man
fighting toward lifesaving air.
I
became aware that I was flesh. I felt my muscles, tightened till some were
cramped. My throat was painfully dry. I tried to talk. "Speaker ..."
I rasped.
Someone
stirred but no one replied. I was slumped in a chair.
The
Nyueng Bao had no furniture in their place, which was little more than an animal
den. Had they returned me to my own people?
I
forced an eye open.
What
the hell? What was this place? A dungeon? A torture chamber? Had Mogaba
snatched me? There was a skinny little Taglian over there, tied into a chair
just like mine, and another man was strapped onto a table.
That
was Smoke, the Taglian royal wizard! I levered myself up. That hurt. A lot. The
prisoner in the chair watched me warily. "Where am I?" I asked.
His
wariness redoubled. His lips pursed. He said nothing. I looked around. I was in
a dusty, almost barren chamber but the nature of the stone answered my
question. I was in Taglios. This was the Royal Palace. There is no stone like
this stone anywhere else.
How?
Ever
seen paint run down a wall? That is what happened to reality. Right in front of
my eyes it ran and dribbled and streaked. The man in the chair squeaked. He
shook. I have no idea what he thought he saw. But reality drifted away and I
was in a grey place, confused, filled with memories of things never experienced
or seen. Then the confusion began to sort itself out and the grey washed away
and in a short time I was in a room somewhere in the Palace at Trogo Taglios.
Smoke lay on his table breathing slowly and shallowly as always. The Deceiver
was in his seat. He earned a narrow-eyed glare because of the way he was
sweating. What was he up to now?
His
eyes bugged. What did he see when he looked at me? I rose, aware that I had to
be recovering from one of my spells. But there was no one here who could have
brought me back. Didn't it take Croaker or One-Eye to drag me up out of the
depths of darkness?
Hints
of memory stirred in the deeps of my mind. I snatched at them, tried
desperately to hang on. Something in a cavern. A song of shadow. Waking up once
in a past long ago but still only a moment earlier in this time.
I was
weak. This business was debilitating. And thirst was becoming a rage within me.
I could
do something about that. A pitcher and metal cup stood on the table beside
Smoke's head. Beneath the cup I found a scrap of paper torn from a larger
sheet. It carried a message in Croaker's tight script. No time to coddle you
now, Murgen. If you wake up on your own drink this water. There is food in the
box. One-Eye or I will be back as soon as possible.
The
scrap might have come from a procurement request. The Old Man hates to waste
any fragment of blank paper. Paper is too damned dear.
I
checked the tin box on the other side of Smoke's head. It was filled with
heavy, unleavened cakes of the sort my mother-in-law bakes despite all pleas to
desist. In fact, on closer examination, I knew no one else could have baked
them. If I survived here I would owe Croaker a swift kick in the slats.
P.S.
Check the Strangler's bonds. He nearly got away once already.
So that
was what he was doing when I woke up. He wanted to worm out so he could murder
me and my pal Smoke and then make a run for it.
I drank
from the pitcher. The Deceiver looked at me with a longing you could almost
smell. "Want a sip?" I asked. "Just tell me what's going
on."
The man
was not yet ready to sell his soul for a drink of water.
Soon
after I wolfed down one of Mother Gota's sinkers I felt my strength returning.
"Let's get you cinched up good and tight," I told my companion.
"Wouldn't want you wandering off and getting hurt."
He
stared at me in silence while I fixed him up. He didn't need to speak to let me
know what was on his mind. I told him,
"This
is the risk you took when you signed on with the bad guys."
He
would not argue but he refused to agree. I was confused.
I was
the bad guy because I wasn't blazing hot on the effort to bring Kina back into
the world. I patted his head. "You could be right, brother. But I hope
not. Here." I snatched up the cloth and drew it back over him, where it
belonged. Then I drank some more water and ate part of a roll and when I got to
feeling frisky I decided to return to my apartment. It was subjective as hell
but it was an age since I had seen my wife. In reality it could not have been
more than a few hours. I got lost.
51
Of
course I got lost. It was inevitable. The future me within me did not recall
anything else but it did remember that I was going to get lost, then find my
way to someplace I was not trying to go. That much came to me just after I
realized that I did not have a clue how to get back to any familiar part of the
Palace. I stopped to take stock.
At that
moment I had enough near-current memories of other Murgens from other times
that I was ready to trust any memory from any time, though it came with no
supporting context whatsoever.
This
memory of getting lost carried flavors of the excitement of unexpected
discovery and powerful overtones of pain. An echo told me I did not want to
find my way again.
Somewhere,
while still stubbornly trying to get out, I came upon a gloomy hallway that
seemed to smell of old magic. A few yards away a shattered door hung
precariously upon a single hinge.
Discovery
beckoned. I went forward unafraid.
One look
inside told me I had found Smoke's secret library the place where the only
surviving copies of the first several Annals had been gathered and sealed away
so there would be no chance we Black Company types would ever chance upon them.
I wanted to read them so badly. But I had not come to read. I did not have time
to sort the wheat from the chaff of a hundred other books. I had to get back to
my family.
I
strove valiantly but could not get there. Head spinning, I tried to retrace my
steps. It looked like I would have to wait with Smoke until One-Eye or the Old
Man turned up. They could lead me out the easy way and maybe tell me why I did
not want to go, because that part would not come to mind clearly. I got back to
Smoke easily, with no misturns. I had begun to suspect that there were spells
webbed into that part of the Palace, cast so no intruder could find his way
around the maze without One-Eye's blessing. It might be that all paths led to
the same destination. Or maybe they all led away if you did not start out with
Smoke to begin.
That
would not surprise me, though I had no idea if One-Eye had the skill and power
to manage it. Nor would it surprise me to find out that he did not remember
casting the spell in the first place, so had made no provision for me to get
around it.
The
Deceiver was wiggling when I returned, my step so soft he did not sense my
presence immediately. He froze when he did. Give that man credit for
determination.
I
settled into the empty chair. I waited. Nobody came. It seemed hours passed but
probably it was just a few long minutes. I got up and tramped around, back and
forth. I tormented the Strangler some but that just made me feel bad, too. I
covered him up and sat down again.
I
stared at Smoke. I thought about the Black Company and its tribulations. I
remembered what Smoke could do.
Why
not? Just to kill time? But where to go? What to see? When?
Why not
the great enemy again?
It was
easy this time. Nothing to it. Like closing my eyes and drifting off into a
reverie.
I did
not go without some reluctance. I was spending way too much time beyond the
normal pale, against my will. Why add to my confusion by going wandering on my
own, too?
With
almost a snap and pop I found myself adrift outside fortress Overlook. The mad
sorcerer Longshadow stood atop one of his tall towers, amidst reflected light,
less than ten feet away. I suffered a mild panic. He was looking right at me.
Right
through me.
Behind
him, stance mocking, was that wretch Narayan Singh, with Croaker's kid, the
mortal flesh of Kinda, the Daughter of Night, the One Foretold who would bring
on the Deceivers' Year of the Skulls, which will end with the awakening of
their goddess. Singh never let the child out of his sight. Singh was a dangerous
tool but Longshadow needed every ally willing to join him.
Quite a
few folks seemed willing to sign on against the Black Company.
A
figure emerged from a hatchway apparently dark only because of the intensity of
the light surrounding the mad wizard. This man was tall, ebony, lithe as a
panther. No anger touched me because emotions turn pale in Smoke's domain,
although this was Mogaba, the most dangerous of the Shadowlander generals.
I
suspect Longshadow appreciated Mogaba less for his abilities than because he
could be trusted. Mogaba has nowhere to run. The Company stands astride every
road to safety.
I
cannot understand why Croaker does not hate Mogaba. Hell, he makes excuses for
the man, even feels sorry for him. He takes his feud with Blade much more to
heart.
Mogaba
said, "Howler brought news. The storm system no longer works."
Longshadow
grunted. "I saw. My small shadows remain useful. I recall that I predicted
they would catch on quickly. Have you any thoughts on how the woman Senjak
could regain her powers when, by the nature of these things, she ought to be at
the mercy of anyone who knows her True Name ?"
I had a
feeling he really wanted to know how Howler could survive a Lady with her
powers restored and her old, wicked knowledge intact. Longshadow viewed the
world through a lens of paranoia.
I
wondered myself. About Lady's powers. Croaker guessed it had something to do
with crossing the equator. That did not sound plausible. Neither One-Eye nor
Goblin would hazard a guess. Lady herself refused to discuss it. I had no idea
what she believed. Nobody pressed. That was not something you did if you wanted
to stay friendly with somebody like Lady. She can get real unpleasant if she
doesn't like you.
"No
ideas," Mogaba said. "It isn't something I understand." There
were many things Mogaba did not understand, including any languages native to
that region. He communicated with Longshadow using his improved but still
flawed Taglian. "Maybe she changed her name."
Could
they do that?
I
realized the remark was Mogaba's attempt at a joke. But Longshadow did mull it
over as though it was possible in some subjective fashion.
The
moment passed. Longshadow faced Singh. "Deceiver. Why are you here? What
machinations has the Howler involved you in now?"
Mogaba
answered for Narayan. "The Black Company jumped them in their holy grove
and killed everyone but him and the girl. Your shadowweavers barely had time to
call for Howler before they died. Howler found these two hiding a few miles
away and got them out only yards ahead of the pursuit."
So.
This was only a short while after our raid. And here was a surprise. I believed
Narayan had gotten warning from the Shadowmaster. But he had not. So how had he
shaken the sleep spell?
Mention
of the shadowweavers rocked Longshadow. I thought he would fly into one of his
famed foamy-mouthed rages. Those strange little old men were a resource he
dared not squander. It took a lifetime to train them. And we have taken care of
a bunch of them over the years.
Longshadow
sucked in a deep breath, held it, restrained his insanity. "My error. I
should not have sent them. Have you any idea how our enemies could appear at a
time so propitious to their cause?"
Nobody
volunteered the news that we could hover over his shoulder any time the urge
hit.
Longshadow
observed, "This is not good. Each day they develop new resources. Each day
ours dwindle." He glared at Singh. "What are we getting from these
Deceivers?"
Mogaba
replied. "They spy. Before long they will undertake selected
assassinations. The enemy shows no awareness of that program. If their
assassinations succeed the results will be of more value that anything but a
decisive encounter on the battlefield."
Mogaba
invited comment from Singh with his glance but Narayan held his tongue.
Mogaba
said, "Unfortunately, the intelligence the Deceivers gather grows less
reliable with each report. The enemy have enjoyed considerable success in their
efforts to eliminate the cult."
Still
no one else spoke.
Mogaba
continued, "Lady and Croaker have become very aggressive against spies. I
believe that indicates a major move is imminent."
"It's
winter," Longshadow said. "And my enemies are in no hurry. They are
content to nibble me to death. This so-called Liberator will never be satisfied
that he has men and weapons enough."
He was
right about that. Croaker never stopped going after more.
The
Howler joined the group, stifling a scream as he did so. He husked, "The
enemy labor battalions have completed the paved road linking Taglios and
Stormgard. A similar road is almost complete from Stormgard to
Shadowlight."
Shadowlight
lies near the heart of the most populous and prosperous region of the
Shadowlands. Shadowspinner had been overlord there. Nominally, the city and its
environs still owed allegiance to Longshadow. Yet our soldiers were building a
road in the area untroubled.
I
wondered why. Croaker's strategic plan did not require it. He had no intention
of besieging Shadowlight. That would tie up too many men for far too long.
Mogaba
grumbled, "They press us everywhere. No day passes but that we hear of the
fall of another town or village. Many places the locals no longer resist at
all. And it would be folly to assume that Croaker and Lady will respect the
season."
Longshadow
turned his dread mask toward Mogaba, who flinched. "Have you done anything
to make it difficult to sustain a major campaign, General?"
An army
must live off the land if it ventures far from home. You cannot carry enough
food and fodder to sustain it any length of time.
"Very
little." Mogaba didn't show an ounce of contrition. "I have my
orders. And our enemies know what those orders are.
"What?"
Now Longshadow was testy.
"They
expect me to sit still." Mogaba indicated Singh, who nodded agreement
reluctantly. "Their strategy assumes that I will defend one fixed point.
Because your orders constrain me to do just that they scatter their forces and
attack everywhere. Blade cannot blunt their sword alone. The villages will not
resist because the people know no help will come. I could defeat the fools in
detail, in a short while, if our strategy changed suddenly."
I don't
think so, I thought, floating there smug in the knowledge that we had Smoke.
"No!"
Longshadow forced his quaking flesh to face southward. He glared at the plain
of glittering stone. "We will discuss military matters in private only,
General."
Howler
delivered a horrible scream edged with mockery. Singh practically dove through
the hatchway. His contempt for the Shadowmaster was obvious to everyone but
Longshadow himself though it was likely Longshadow would not have cared. To the
Shadowmaster the Strangler was little more than a useful termite. In his mind
none of us were much more than pesky insects.
The
child left last. She considered Longshadow coldly. Her eyes seemed as old and
wicked as time itself. She was a scary little thing for sure.
I
wondered what the Old Man thought when he saw her.
Or if
he even dared look.
Longshadow
said, "They don't think I know what I'm doing."
"My
soldiers are wasted where they are," Mogaba replied.
"They're
losing what edge they had."
"You
may be right. But to attack in any direction you will have to leave what
protection I am able to afford you. Without my lost comrades I cannot reach
nearly as far as once I did. Will you risk their sorcery without mine to
support you?" Mogaba grunted. He glared at the glittering plain. "You
believe I am a coward for fearing that, General?" "I stipulate the
danger. I grant the value of your protection. But there is much that I could do
anyway. Blade has been allowed to act on a limited scale and has accomplished
great things. For certain he has demonstrated repeatedly how these Taglians
will collapse if you attack their weaknesses." "You trust
Blade?"
"More
than most. Like me, he has nowhere else to run. But I trust no one completely.
Our allies least of all. Neither Howler nor the Deceiver joined us out of love
for our cause."
"Indeed."
Apparently amused, Longshadow seemed to relax. "I must explain,
General." Mogaba's surprise told me that this was an extraordinary
eventuality. "I do not stay bottled up here because of the plain. I can
leave Overlook for short periods. I will if I must. The Shadowgate wards are
fresh and strong and reliable and entirely under my control. But if I do
venture out I will have to so do by stealth." Mogaba grunted again.
"The
reason I stay here is that there are some less obvious players in this
game."
Mogaba
frowned. Sounded like a crock to me, too.
"Howler
springs from that clan once known as The Ten Who Were Taken."
"I
know."
"Stormshadow
matriculated from that slave school as well. Another graduate was Senjak's
sister. They called her Soulcatcher."
"I
believe we've met."
"Yes.
She embarrassed you at Stormgard." Actually, that was Lady that time.
Wasn't it?
Mogaba
nodded. I was surprised. Time seemed to have given him the ability to manage
his temper.
"Some
years ago circumstances deceived Howler and I. We took Soulcatcher prisoner
under the impression that we had captured her sister. She was masquerading as
Senjak at the time so the mistake was more her fault than ours. She escaped
during some confusion that arose later. Although we did not treat her severely
she bears us a unreasonable ill will. She has done us mischief before now and
awaits the opportunity to do us major harm."
"You
think if you left Overlook she might invite herself inside and forget to leave
the door unlocked?" "Exactly."
Ha!
Imagine hijacking that incredible fortress.
Mogaba
sighed. "So whether I like it or not it will have to be decided on the
Plain of Charandaprash."
"Yes.
Will you win?"
"Yes."
Mogaba never did lack confidence. "As long as Croaker remains the man I
knew, scarred by that streak of softness."
"If?"
"He
hides behind a hundred masks. His soft streak may be another of those."
"So
this man concerns you despite your desire to discount him.
"We
continue to play to his strengths, not to attack his weaknesses. We allow him
time to think, to plan, to maneuver, so he does not need to be subtle. His
forces advance everywhere. Along the frontier the people are more afraid of the
Black Company than of you. For pure viciousness there is nothing to match his
war against Singh's kind. The Croaker I remember would have taken prisoners. He
would have pardoned Stranglers willing to abandon their religion."
Right,
I thought sarcastically. Then I reconsidered. Mogaba might be correct. Croaker
had been forgiving, once upon a time.
"Maybe
Senjak wants the example made."
"Possibly,
She is that hard. But her influence doesn't explain Croaker's having spent
seven thousand lives trying to get Blade."
What?
This was news. "Blade deserted him."
"I
deserted him. And I was Company. Blade was only an adventurer, not a brother.
He hasn't come after me that way. With Blade he's fighting a personal
war."
The
falling out with Blade and Blade's subsequent flight and defection baffled a
lot of people, especially his buddies Cordy and Willow. And my name can go to
the top of the list. Whispers were that Croaker stumbled onto something real
going on between Lady and Blade. Whatever, it was certain that he was as
obsessive about Blade as he was about Narayan Singh.
Lady
did not interfere in Croaker's vendetta. Neither did she help.
"That
troubles you?"
"Croaker
confuses me. In some ways he has become dangerously unpredictable. At the same
time he becomes more and more the high priest of the Black Company legend,
admitting no other gods before his precious Annals."
That
was not true. Croaker grew less interested all the time But allow Mogaba his
hyperbole. He wanted to sell something.
Mogaba
continued, "I fear he may become so skewed he'll attack in a way so novel
we won't recognize it until it's too late."
"As
long as he comes. Only disaster awaits him."
"He'll
come. But is the overall outcome so certain?" I got the feeling both men
nurtured major doubts, but each mostly about the other.
"You
circle back upon my constraints. Desist. You fear him?"
"I
dread him. More than I dread Lady. Lady is straightforward in her enmity. She
comes right at you with everything she has. Croaker is determined to flim-flam
you into looking somewhere else while he sticks a knife in your back. He will
come at you with everything he has, too, but how will he use it? He is not a
man of honor."
Mogaba
didn't really mean that Croaker was dishonorable but that he was not a
gentleman in the sense that meant so much to Mogaba-who could not be considered
a cavalier himself anymore.
Mogaba
continued, "He is no longer sane. I do not believe he is sure what he is
doing himself. These days he has to face much for which there is no precedent
in his Annals."
Wrong
again, chappie. After four hundred years there is a precedent for everything in
the Annals somewhere. The trick is knowing how to look.
"He
has limits, General."
"Of
course. Those Taglians are factious and divisive."
"And
that could be his undoing. Politically he will have no option but to try his
luck at Charandaprash soon. Where we will crush him."
"And
if I do? We should consider the possibilities of life unplagued by this disease
called the Black Company."
"Oh?"
"Winning
one battle will not be enough. If even one of them survives and maintains
possession of the Lance of Passion new armies will rise against us. Lady proved
that."
"Then
you will have the pleasure of crushing them again." Mogaba wanted to argue
but elected not to bark into the wind.
"Once
Overlook is complete you can hare off on any adventure you like, with my
approval and with my total support." "Adventure?"
"I
understand you better than you suppose. You were Gea-Xle's greatest warrior but
you could not prove that to yourself. In the Black Company you were
overshadowed by your captain and Senjak. It was necessary for you to have
command in order to demonstrate your scope and genius. When you did have an
opportunity all your efforts were sabotaged and suborned. You came to me
because the Black Company would not allow you the opportunity you need."
Mogaba
nodded. He did not seem pleased with himself, though. And that surprised me. I
had thought him too self-centered to entertain moral doubts.
"Go.
Conquer the world, General. I'll enjoy helping you. But you have to crush the
Black Company first. You have to stop the Taglians. Because you will have
nothing if I fall. Will the Strangler be much help, really?"
"He
could be. He talks big about his goddess getting involved but I won't count on
that. I've never seen the gods actually take a hand in mortal affairs."
Odd.
Mogaba's god was Narayan's goddess, more or less. Had Mogaba lost his faith?
Maybe Dejagore had scarred him deeply, too.
"Use
them up. Leave none over to turn on us later." In my imagination the
Shadowmaster was always this huge stinking devil incarnate, a colorful lunatic
the magnitude of the worst Taken back in the north. But the real Longshadow was
just a mean-spirited old man blessed with too much power.
He told
Mogaba, "If this becomes the Year of the Skulls I want it to be our year.
Not theirs."
"Understood.
What do you think of the child?"
Longshadow
grunted uncomfortably.
"Spooky,
right? A thousand years old. Her mother in miniature, only worse. More intense,
with a deeper darkness inside."
He
could be right. The kid definitely looked weird and evil from my ghost's eye
view.
The
Shadowmaster mused, "We may have to hurry her into the embrace of her
goddess."
Mogaba
shrugged. He turned to go. "Anyone else you want to see alone?"
"Howler.
Wait!"
"What?"
"Where
is the Lance of Passion?"
"Wherever
Croaker is, I imagine. Or the Standardbearer. That's still that serpent Murgen,
I believe."
I love
you too, Mogaba.
"We
must take possession. Might that not be a task for the Deceivers? Even
destroying the Black Company may not be enough in the long run. And one other
thing for the Deceivers. Have them find out why Senjak wants all that
bamboo."
"Bamboo?"
Was
there an echo?
"She
has been stripping the Taglian territories for months. Wherever her soldiers go
they loot bamboo."
"That
is curious. I will find out." I followed Mogaba for a moment. Once he was
clear of the parapet he muttered, "Bamboo. I have to humor a
lunatic."
I tried
to travel south of Overlook. Smoke went only a short way before he balked.
Well.
I would
find out sooner than I wanted, I supposed. After we settled Longshadow and
Overlook the plain was next on the list of obstacles blocking our path to
Khatovar.
52
I
returned to the chamber with Smoke and our stinky pet Strangler. I was hungry
and thirsty but also so excited I shook. I had not uncovered much of resounding
import, but, gods! The potential!
I drank
from the pitcher, cleared my throat, lifted the corner of the cloth covering
the prisoner. "You in there? Want a drink? Want to tell me?" He was
asleep. "Be that way."
So what
now? Help had not arrived. I gnawed on one of Mother Gota's stones. That eased
my hunger. That was all I wanted at the moment.
What
now? Keep going out until somebody came to reclaim me? See Lady? Look for
Goblin? Hunt for Blade? How about finding out where Soulcatcher was hiding? She
had to be out there somewhere, though we had not stubbed our toes on her
lately. No place was free of crows if a member of the Company was around.
Soulcatcher
is patient. That is her scariest trait.
It was
kid-in-the-candy-shop time.
I
decided to look for Soulcatcher. She was the oldest mystery going right now.
Smoke
jumped right out, but then he stalled. His soul, or ka, or whatever, became
more agitated as I grew more insistent. "All right! She always was more
trouble than I want to deal with, anyway. Let's find her goofy sister."
Lady
did not intimidate Smoke at all.
I found
her in the citadel at Dejagore, in the conference chamber with four men,
leaning over a map. The frontier markings on the map lay far south of Dejagore.
Earlier boundaries were noted and identified by date.
She
needed a new map. Her old one was too busy. She had won too many skirmishes.
Lady is
a beauty even fresh from the field. She looks way too young for Croaker
although she is far older than One-Eye. One-Eye never mastered any youth
sorcery.
Two of
Lady's companions were Company men, Gea-Xle Nar anxious to show the world that
Mogaba and his traitors were mutants, that their like would not be seen again.
I did not buy that. Neither did Lady or the Old Man. We were confident that
Mogaba had left somebody behind. Croaker once told me, "Watch out for
somebody to start pointing fingers. That'll be the traitor."
A third
man was the Prahbrindrah Drah, the ruling Prince of Taglios. He was about as
nondescript, for a Taglian, as a man could be and still be breathing. He put in
the last four years learning the arts of war. He commanded a full division now,
the right wing of the field army. Lady and the Old Man took pains to entangle
him deeply in their war machine so he had a personal stake to maintain there.
The
last man was the improbable Willow Swan. When I focused on him Smoke became
agitated, which proved to me Smoke's self was partially aware on some plane. He
and Swan had gotten on like rats and mice.
These
days Swan is the captain of the Royal Guards detachment assigned to Dejagore.
Swan
wears his cornsilk hair longer than Lady does her shoulder-length black hair.
Sometimes Willow braids his but at the moment it was pulled back into a
ponytail. Lady's hair was back in a tail, too. Usually she lets it hang free.
She did keep it combed and clean when she could.
A
soldier by accident, Swan did not want to be a hero. His Guards existed outside
the army and functioned mainly as military police. He and they owed their
allegiance directly to the Prince and his sister.
Lady
said, "Howler has quit attacking outposts."
"You
said he ain't stupid," Swan replied.
"I
got too close when I missed him. That scared him off for good."
One of
the Nar observed, "Our raids must trouble them." "They trouble
me, Isi. And I authorized them." Lady shivered momentarily.
"They
are effective." "Beyond a doubt."
The
Prince asked, "But would the Liberator approve?" Lady's smile
revealed glistening white teeth that were almost too perfect. She had mastered the
cosmetic sorceries early. "He doesn't approve. Definitely. But he won't
interfere. I'm the one who is here and I'm relying on my own experience."
The
Prince asked, "Will Longshadow unleash Mogaba?" The Nar brigadiers
tensed. Mogaba shamed them greatly by letting pride and vanity seduce him away
from the ancient ideals of the Nar. Not to mention he was going to be
blue-assed hell in a fight.
Swan
asked, "You take any prisoners down there?" "Yes. And what they
knew would fit into a thimble with room left for a stork's nest. Nobody
responsible down there ever sits around the campfire swapping secrets with the
troops."
Swan
stared at her while her gaze was directed elsewhere. He saw a woman five and a
half feet tall, blue-eyed, 110 perfectly arranged pounds. She was big for this
part of the world. She looked like she might turn twenty soon. That old black
magic. Swan was transparent.
Lady is
cold and hard and committed and deadlier than a sword with a will of its own,
but these guys just can't seem to help themselves. It started with the Old Man
way back but the parade goes on. The fever cost Blade big.
Despite
what may have happened with Blade I am convinced that Lady is the Captain's
woman absolutely. Whatever happened, Croaker took it to heart. He drove a good
man over to the enemy and became something as cold as Lady himself. Half the
time, anymore, Croaker is this living wargod so fierce that when he barks even
the Prince and the Radisha jump. Aloud, Lady wondered what Howler's raids were meant
to accomplish. Swan blurted Bucket's answer. "He wanted to pick off Black
Company guys. That's obvious."
"Isi?"
Lady asked. "Is there more?"
One of
the Nar replied, "Mogaba wouldn't test himself against lesser men.
Longshadow might want to remove those so he can better manipulate Mogaba's
obsessions. Or he might be trying to initiate the final battle by being a
continuous irritant."
The
Prince nodded to himself. Now he was watching Lady with that gleam in his eye.
Was it
the fatal lure of evil?
"Perhaps
he does want to bring Croaker to the front."
How
many times over the centuries has Lady stood like that, about to loose fire and
sword? She said, "We do need to move this headquarters nearer to the
action. The communications lag has become unacceptable. Swan. Hand me that map
there."
Swan
plucked a map off a sideboard cluttered with mystic paraphernalia. His caution
indicated that he found that stuff obscure and wanted it to stay that way.
The map
portrayed the far south. A large blank space on its left was labelled Shindai
Kus, which was a desert. Beyond the unmapped nether edge of the desert was
additional blank space labeled Ocean.
Beginning
in the Shindai Kus, running east and curving northward, are mountains
generically refered to as the Dandha Presh. They become rougher and rougher as
they swerve around to form, eventually, the eastern limits of the Taglian
territories. The range changes its local name frequently. It is supposed to be
impassable east of the Shindai Kus except through the high pass at
Charandaprash.
Longshadow,
Shadowcatch and Overlook lie on the far side of the Dandha Presh. Mogaba's army
was the cork in the pass bottlenecking the road south. For ages a common
subject when officers were not listening was how badly would we get whipped if
we took a crack at Mogaba.
A
racket apparently arose outside because Swan jumped to the window. "A
courier," he announced. I could hear no sound from outside that room. In
fact, when I did glance out the window I could see nothing but greyness.
Strange.
Lady
elbowed Swan aside. "Can't be good news. Get him before he talks too
much."
Swan
returned quickly. "It's not too bad. Seems a really huge mob of Shadar and
Vehdna fanatics were chasing Blade and had the bad luck to catch him."
What?
That wasn't news. I knew about it. The Shadowmaster knew about it.... Of
course. Lady did not have a Smoke or a screaming-nut sidekick with a flying
carpet. And I had known for just a little while. Maybe it seemed longer because
I learned it so far away.
"What
are you babbling?" Lady demanded.
"Blade
wiped out over five thousand religious goofs who were after him to punish him
for his religious excesses." Blade was pretty hard on temples and priests
when he had the opportunity.
His
religious attitude had a lot to do with his running away, too. He had made
thorough, blood-bitter enemies of all Taglian priests long before his falling
out with the Old Man. The devout considered his fall from favor a blessing from
heaven.
I was
confident that the priests secretly looked forward to all of our fates becoming
gifts from the angels.
"Five
thousand?"
"Maybe
more. Maybe up to seven thousand."
"Loose
on their own? How could that happen?" Neither the ruling family nor we
liked having huge groups of armed men not under our control blundering around
righting wrongs. "Out. All of you, out of here. Come back in two
hours."
Lady
started murmuring the instant she was alone. "That damned Croaker."
She grabbed stuff off the sideboard. "He's out of his mind."
I
learned that you got damned focused out there with Smoke. Time could rush past
if you let yourself become introspective.
Fragments
of all that was happening to me came to me in no rational order and I almost
got lost trying to piece the puzzle together.
Realization,
and resulting terror, feeble as it was out there, brought me back to the
present in the place I was watching when I lost my concentration. Hours had
passed.
Lady
was still grumbling about the Old Man. "What's the matter with him? How
could he believe those damned rumors?"
She was
angry. She had managed some mystic scrying of the distant battlefield as it
appeared after the event. All that carnage had left her more upset.
"Damned fool!" It was the worst disaster for Taglian arms since
Dejagore.
From
some hidden recess in the sideboard she produced a piece of black cloth. I was
startled, despite having studied her Annals closely. That was the silk rumel of
a master Strangler. She began exercising with the killing scarf.
Maybe
that helped her relax.
She was
upset because she had been left out of something. Usually she was the Captain's
partner.
Got you
a clue, woman, I thought. Lately he is cutting everybody out.
Lady's
scarf flashed. She was good. I wondered. Was there still some connection with
Kina?
Did
Croaker fear there might be?
They
were not called Deceivers for nothing.
She
calmed herself. She sent for her council. Once they gathered she said,
"There were survivors from that battle. Some are still there burying the
dead. Catch me a few."
53
Croaker
never came to the hidden room. Neither did One-Eye, nor even the Radisha to
torment our prisoner. Nobody wakened me.
I
drifted back there almost without design, perhaps summoned by my body. I had
been gone a long time. Longer than the subjective time spent out there. My
stretch of introspection must have extended farther than it had seemed.
My
stomach was roaring. But Mother Gota's baked rocks were all gone.
The
Strangler had gotten the cloth off himself again. He watched me wide-eyed. I
got the feeling he had been about to do something that I would regret.
I
discovered that he had managed to work one hand free. "You naughty
boy." I took a long pull off the pitcher of water, then fixed him up
again. Then I tried to decide whether to risk the labyrinth once more, in an
effort to get to some of Mother Gota's lethal chow, or to stay and take yet
another look at the wide world through Smoke's eyes while I awaited help.
"Water."
"Sorry,
pal. I don't think so. Unless maybe you want to tell me what your buddies are
up to." My belly grumbled again.
The
Strangler did not answer. Weak as he was, his will remained firm. Even ignoring
my own presence it seemed somebody should have come to feed him.
It was
late. Maybe Mother Gota was asleep and Sarie would handle my meal. She did not
cook like she was out for vengeance.
I was
at the doorway, trying to make up my mind. Was there some way to mark my
passage? Some way to follow footprints in the dust? But there was no light.
This part of the Palace was not in regular use. No one maintained any candles
or torches. The lamp in the chamber behind me would be the only light
available. Unless I waited till daylight, when the sun would steal in through
random cracks and tiny windows.
I
glanced back at the lamp. It had been burning a long time. No one had been by
to fuel it. I ought to see about refilling it before I did anything else.
There
was a metallic sound from far, far away, come around a hundred corners and down
the rambling halls. It chilled me despite Taglios's natural heat and humidity.
"Water."
"Shut
up." I found a beaker of lamp oil, cocked my head while I worked. The
metallic sound did not repeat itself.
I had
not covered the Strangler again. When I glanced at him I discovered his
deathshead face stretched in a grin. It was the grin of Death.
Spilling
oil, I flung myself out of there.
I got
lost again. Fast.
54
Lost in
the Palace was not a matter for panic so I didn't. I confess to a certain
amount of frustration, though.
You
would think my situation vulnerable to the application of common sense. I sure
thought so.
One
good rule proved to be not to enter any corridor dustier than the one I was
using. Another was to avoid apparent shortcuts religiously. They never led
anywhere I wanted to go. Most important was, don't yield to emotion or
frustration.
The
Palace is the only place in the world where you can step through a doorway and
end up on a different floor. I found out the hard way. And it was not any sort
of elf magic. It came from the place being a conglomeration of ages and ages of
add-ons built upon very uneven ground.
My
anxiety reached the point where I elected to pursue what seemed the wimp route.
I decided to go down to ground level, find one of the Palace's thousand postern
doors, which can be opened only from the inside, and get out into the street.
Out there I would know where I was. I would walk around to the entrance I used
regularly. Then I would be home.
It is
really dark in there in the middle of the night. I found that out after I
stumbled descending a stair and dropped my lamp.
It
broke, of course. And for a while there was a lot of light down below. But soon
the fire burned out.
Oh,
well. It was a certainty that there would be a door to the street below. The
stairwell curved down against an exterior wall. I had leaned out a window to
make sure before I ever entered it.
Descending
an ancient stair that spirals isn't easy when there are no handrails and you
cannot see what you are doing. Nevertheless, I got to the bottom without
breaking any bones, although I did slip a couple of times and endured one long
spell of vertigo after passing through the smoke from the burned lamp fuel.
Eventually
the stair ended. I felt around for a door. As I did so I frowned. What was I
doing? Took me a moment to reach back into my head and bring up the answer.
I found
the door, felt around for a release. I found an old fashioned wooden latch bar,
which was not what I expected at all.
I
yanked, pushed. The door swung outward.
Wrong
answer to your problem, Murgen.
Within
that fastness nothing moves, though at times mists of light shimmer as they
leak over from beyond the gates of dream. Shadows linger in corners. And way
down inside the core of the place, in the feeblest throb of the heart of
darkness, there is life of a sort.
A
massive wooden throne stands upon a dais at the heart of a chamber so vast only
a sun could light it all. Upon that throne a body sprawls, veiled by shoals of
shadow, pinioned by silver knives driven through its feet and hands. Sometimes
that body sighs softly in its sleep, impelled by bitter dreams acrawl behind
its sightless eyes.
This is
survival of a sort.
In the
night, when the wind no longer licks through its unglazed windows, nor prances
along its untenanted halls, nor whispers to its million creeping shadows, that
fortress is filled with the silence of stone.
55
No
will.
No
identity. At home in the house of pain.
56
There
you are! Where have you been? Welcome back to . The house of pain?
57
The
house of pain. I went there but do not remember the journey or the visit.
I was
on hands and knees on broken pavement. My palms and knees hurt. I lifted a
hand. My palm was torn. Blood oozed from a dozen abrasions. My mind was numb. I
raised my other hand, began picking out bits of paving brick.
Fifty
yards away the side of a building glowed olive, pulsating. A circle of masonry
blew outward. Shadows sprang out of the darkness. With weapons bare they
scrambled through the hole. Shouts and the clang of metal came from inside.
I got
up and wandered that direction, vaguely interested but not sure why, not even
thinking definable thoughts.
"Hey!"
A shadow at that hole stared at me. I did not yell so that must have been the
shadow. "That you, Murgen?"
I kept
walking, head spinning. My course curved to the right. I banged into the side
of a building. After that I had a sure means of navigation. Like a drunk I
steered by keeping one hand on the wall.
"Here
he is!" The shadow pointed at me.
"Candles?"
"Yeah.
You all right? What did they do to you?"
I had
little pains everywhere. I felt like I had been stabbed and cut and burned.
"Who? Nobody did anything? . . ." Did they? "Where am 1?
When?"
"Huh?"
A man
leaned through the side of the building. He wore a scarf wrapped around his
face. Only his eyes were visible. He studied me momentarily, popped back
inside. Somebody in there yelled.
People
jumped into the street. Some carried bloody weapons. All were masked. A couple
grabbed my arms and took off.
We
scurried through darkened streets in a nighted city and no one would answer my
panted questions so for a while I had no idea when I was, or where. Then we
crossed an open space from which I glimpsed the citadel of Dejagore.
That
answered my most immediate questions.
But a
new crop sprouted. Why were we outside the Company's part of town? How had I
gotten there? Why didn't I have any memories of this? I recalled sitting with
Ky Dam, secretly lusting after his granddaughter. . . .
The men
accompanying me removed their wraps and masks. They were Company. Plus Uncle
Doj and a couple of Nyueng Bao sprites. We ducked into an alleyway that led to
Nyueng Bao territory. "Slow down," I gasped. "What's going
on?"
"Somebody
snatched you," Candles explained. "At first we thought Mogaba did
it."
"Huh?"
"Shadowspinner's
taken his whole army off after Lady. We could walk away if we wanted. We
thought he decided to take a hostage."
I did
not believe Spinner was gone. "Uncle Doj. The last thing I remember was
sipping tea with the Speaker."
"You
began to behave oddly, Stone Soldier."
I
growled. He did not apologize.
"The
Speaker thought perhaps you had been drinking before you arrived. He instructed
Thai Dei to take you home. He was offended. You proved to be such a burden that
Thai Dei was unable to defend himself when you were attacked. He was beaten
badly but managed to get home with word. Your friends began looking for you as
soon as we informed them." His tone suggested that he wondered why they
had bothered. "They seem more skilled than they pretend. They pinpointed you
quickly. You were not in the citadel, which is where Mogaba would have confined
you."
"How
did I get clear across town?" I winced. In addition to the other pains I
had a hangover-type headache. I had been drugged.
Nobody
had an answer for me.
"Is
this the same night, Uncle?"
"Yes.
But many hours later."
"And
it definitely wasn't Mogaba that grabbed me?"
"No.
There were no Nar in that place. In fact, soon after you were taken someone
attacked Mogaba, too. They may have planned to murder him."
"Jaicuri?"
Maybe the locals wanted to get to the heart of the problem.
"Perhaps."
He did not sound convinced. Maybe he should have taken prisoners.
"Where's
One-Eye?" Only One-Eye could have ripped that hole in the wall back there.
Candles
told me, "Covering our backtrail."
"Good."
I was near normal now. Which meant I was as confused as ever, I guess. Whoever
grabbed me had done some slick work to sneak through Nyueng Bao territory
unnoticed.
Uncle
Doj divined my thoughts. "We have not determined how the villains managed
to ambush you, nor how the others got so close to Mogaba. Those four did pay in
blood."
"He
killed them?"
"By
all reports it was an epic battle, four against one."
"Goody
for Mogaba. Even he deserves a little happiness in life." We were
approaching the tenement that masqueraded as Company headquarters. I invited
everybody in. The boys got a fire going. When One-Eye showed up I suggested he
see if he could not scare up some beer, that I had heard there was some
floating around and we sure could use a drink.
Grumbling,
One-Eye returned to the night. Before long he and Goblin turned up lugging a
barrel. "On me," I told everybody. One-Eye made a whining noise.
I
stripped down and flopped onto a table. Which is why the fire. To take the edge
off the chill. "How do I look, One-Eye?"
His
tone was that of a man responding to a stupid question. "Like a guy that's
been tortured. You don't know how you ended up in the street?"
"My
guess is they heard you coming and tossed me out to distract you while they got
away."
"Didn't
work. Roll onto your side."
I
spotted a face outside the open door. "Come in here. Have a beer with
us."
The
outsider Sindhu joined us. He accepted a mug but appeared to be very uncomfortable.
I noted
how closely Uncle Doj watched him.
58
It was
still that same adventurous night. I was still disoriented, still hurting and
definitely still exhausted but here I was wrapping a rope around me so I could
rappel down the outside of the wall. "You sure the Nar can't see us from
the gate tower?"
"Damn
it, Kid, will you just go? You fuss worse than a mother-in-law."
One-Eye
might know. He has had several.
I
started down. Why did I let Goblin and One-Eye con me into this?
Two
Taglian soldiers were waiting when I reached the crude raft. They helped me
board. I asked, "How deep is the water?"
"Seven
feet," the taller man replied. "We can pole across."
The
rope stirred. I held it. Soon the outsider Sindhu dropped onto the raft. Mine
was the only help he got. The Taglians wouldn't even acknowledge his existence.
I tugged the rope three times hard to let the top end know we were going.
"Start poling."
The
Taglians were volunteers chosen in part because they were well rested. They
were quite happy to be leaving the city and depressed because they would not
get to stay gone.
They
considered this crossing an experiment. If we made it over, slipped through the
southerners, then got back to Dejagore tomorrow night or the next soon whole
fleets would hazard the crossing.
If we
got back. If Shadowspinner's men did not intercept us. If we found Lady at all,
which the soldiers did not know to be part of the mission. . . .
One-Eye
and Goblin browbeat me into looking for Lady. Never mind them injuries, Kid.
They ain't shit. Sindhu was along because Ky Dam thought it was a good idea to
get him out of Dejagore. Sindhu's opinion had not been asked. The Taglians were
supposed to guard me and provide strong backs. Uncle Doj had wanted to come but
had failed to convince the Speaker.
The
crossing was uneventful. Once we stepped ashore I retrieved a tiny green wooden
box from my pocket and released the moth inside. It would fly back to Goblin,
its arrival announcing my safe arrival.
I had
several more boxes, each a different color and each containing a moth to be
released in a particular circumstance. As we started to move up a ravine Sindhu
quietly volunteered to take the point. "I am experienced at this sort of
thing," he told me. And I believed him within minutes. He moved very
slowly, very carefully, making no sound.
I did
all right but not as well. The two Taglians might as well have worn cowbells.
We had
not gone far before Sindhu hissed a warning. We froze while grumbling
Shadowlanders filed across our track twenty yards uphill. I caught only enough
conversation to understand that they prefered a warm blanket to a night patrol
through the hills. Surprise. You would think things would be different in
somebody else's army.
We
encountered another patrol an hour later. It, too, passed without detecting our
presence.
We were
past the ridgeline when dawn began creeping in from the east, extending
visibility to the point where it was too dangerous to keep moving. Sindhu told
me, "We must find a place of concealment."
Standard
procedure in unfriendly territory. And it was no problem. The ravines out there
were choked with brush. A man could disappear underneath easily as long as he
remembered not to wear his orange nightshirt.
We
disappeared. I started snoring seconds after we went to ground. And I did not
go anywhere else, or anywhen.
The
smell of smoke wakened me. I sat up. Sindhu rose at almost the same instant. I
found a crow studying me from so close I had to cross my eyes to focus on him.
The Taglian who was supposed to be keeping watch was sleeping. So much for
well-rested. I said nothing. Neither did Sindhu.
In
moments my fears were confirmed. A southern voice called out. Another answered.
Crows laughed. Sindhu whispered, "They know we are here?" It sounded
like he had trouble believing that.
I
lifted a finger, requesting silence. I listened, picked out a few words.
"They know somebody is here. They don't know who. They're unhappy because
they can't just kill us. The Shadowmaster wants prisoners."
"They
aren't trying to lure us out?"
"They
don't know any of us can understand some of their dialect." The albino
crow in front of me cawed and flapped its way up out of the brush. About twenty
others joined it.
"If
we cannot evade them we must surrender. We must not fight." Sindhu was an
unhappy young man.
I
agreed. I was an unhappy young man myself. The Taglian soldiers were two more
unhappy young men.
We
evaded nothing and no one. The crows found our efforts amusing.
59
Time
had no meaning. The Shadowmaster's camp lay somewhere north of Dejagore. We
four were among the earliest prisoners taken but more soon joined us in our
pen. Lots of Mogaba's guys wanted to leave town.
He would
have less trouble feeding the ones who stayed behind.
One-Eye
and Goblin seemed to hold our part of town together. Nobody I knew became a
prisoner.
I did
not send any more moths so they knew I had found trouble instead of Lady.
Even
our guards had no notion how Spinner meant to use us. We were happier not
knowing, probably.
I spent
uncounted days in total misery. Piglets in a feed lot live better than we did.
More and more prisoners arrived. The food was inadequate. After a few meals
everybody got the runs. There were no sewage provisions, not even a simple slit
trench. They would not let us dig our own. Maybe they did not want us getting
too comfortable.
In fact
our life was not much worse than that of the Shadowlander private soldiers. They
had nothing anymore and could expect only nothing. They indulged in a ferocious
desertion rate despite the Shadowmaster's reputation. They hated Shadowspinner
for putting them into such an awful state. They took their anger out on us.
I do
not know how long we were there. I lost track. I was busy trying to die from
dysentery. I noticed only that there was a sudden absence of crows one day. I
was so used to having crows around that anymore I noticed them only when they
were not there.
I faded
in and out. I suffered a bunch of my spells. They were more frequent now and
left me emotionally drained. The shits left me physically drained.
If I
could only get some sleep . . .
Sindhu
wakened me. I recoiled from his touch. It was astonishingly cold and seemed
vaguely reptilian. I was the only man in the pen he knew so he wanted to be my
pal. I was willing to do without a friend. He offered me a cup of water. It was
a rather nice tin cup. Where did he get that? "Drink," he said.
"It's clean water." All around us prisoners lay in the mud twitching
endlessly in haunted sleep. Some cried out. Sindhu continued, "Something
is going to happen."
"What?"
"I
felt the breath of the goddess."
For an
instant I smelled something that was not the stink of vomit or unwashed bodies
or dead men or pools of liquid shit, too.
"Ah,"
Sindhu whispered. "It's happening now." I looked where he pointed.
The
happening something was going on inside the big tent belonging to the
Shadowmaster. Lights of strange color flickered and flared. "Maybe he's
getting something special ready for somebody." Maybe he had Lady spotted.
Sindhu
snorted. He seemed to thrive in these conditions.
The
something went on a long time but attracted no attention. I became suspicious.
I had Goblin's ward against sleep spells set on me. Oh . . . ? I dragged myself
to the compound fence. When nobody smashed me back with the butt of a spear I
was sure. The camp was under an enchantment.
Sindhu's
water gave me strength quickly and started my brain perking. It occurred to me
that if no one was inclined to stop me this might be the perfect time to take
leave of the Shadowmaster's hospitality. I started worming my way between the
fence rails.
My
stomach rumbled in protest. I ignored it. Sindhu grabbed my arm. His grip was
iron. He said, "Wait."
I
waited. What the hell? That was one of my favorite arms. I didn't want to
deprive myself of its company.
The
moon began to rise, a big old squashed orange egg in the east. Sindhu continued
to restrain me and continued to stare at the big tent.
A
shriek drifted down from high above. "Holy shit," I muttered.
"Not him."
Sindhu
cursed, too. He was so startled that he let me go. He glared upward.
"That's
the Howler," I told him. "Really bad news. Shadowspinner could take
advanced cruelty lessons from him."
The
side of Spinner's tent opened. Out rushed a bunch of people carrying what
proved to be human body parts. I recognized some of them. The people, that is.
Who could mistake Willow Swan with his wild yellow mane? Or Lady, who carried a
severed head by its mangy hair? And Blade was only a step behind her, his ebony
skin shiny in the moonlight. I did not recognize any of the others.
The
sleep spell on the camp, laid rather poorly, unravelled. Southerners jumped up
to ask what was happening. Metal clanged and jingled as weapons and mail were
located.
One of
Lady's companions, a huge Shadar, started bellowing something about bowing down
to the true Daughter of Night.
Sindhu
chuckled. Nothing bothered him, it seemed. He could take anything.
He was
not holding on to me but I no longer had the strength or inclination to go
anywhere.
60
They
pulled it off, Lady and her damnfool gang. Audacity pays. They slipped into the
camp, murdered Shadowspinner, and when they got caught they convinced the
southerners that it was all fated and they should not go doing anything because
of that. I could not be much of a witness to their mass conversion. My bowels
overruled my desire to observe. I spent most of my time making a worse mess of
myself.
At some
point our former guards decided to bring us to Lady's attention in an effort to
curry favor.
Blade
recognized us as they brought us out of the pen.
Blade
looks like he might have been born Nar. Like them he is tall, black and
muscular, without an ounce of fat on him. He says little but has a strong
presence. His background is shadowy. He ran with Willow Swan and Cordy Mather,
who saved him from crocodiles several thousand miles north of Taglios. What
everyone knew for sure, what Blade made no effort to hide, was that he hated
priests, singly, collectively, and without any prejudice whatsoever where
belief system was concerned. Once I thought he was an atheist who hated the
whole idea of gods and religion, but after further exposure I decided it was
only the retailers of religion he detested. That suggested sharp incidents in
his past.
No
matter now. Blade took Sindhu and I away from our guards. "Standardbearer,
you stink."
"Call
out the ladies in waiting. Let them give me a bath." I could not remember
my last bath. In Dejagore we did not waste water on trivialities.
Of
course, now we could bathe all we wanted although the water would be unclean.
Blade
obtained fresh clothing by the expedient of robbing some southern officers, had
us clean up and visit the inadequate field physicians Croaker had tried to
train for the Taglian forces.
They
knew less about stopping the drizzling shits than I did.
It was
daylight when Lady saw me. She already knew the prisoners were deserters from
the city. She was blunt. "Why did you run out, Murgen?"
"I
didn't. We decided somebody had to come find you. I lost the election. . . .
Uh." She was in a bleak mood, apparently pretty sick herself. Never mind
the humor, Murgen. "One-Eye and Goblin figured I was the only trustworthy
guy who had any chance of getting through. They couldn't leave. I didn't make
it, though."
"Why
did you feel the need to send someone?"
"Mogaba
elected himself god. With the water around us, keeping the southerners back, he
doesn't need to get along with anybody who doesn't agree."
Sindhu
said, "The black men believe they serve the goddess, mistress. But their
heresies are grotesque. They have become worse than unbelievers."
I
pricked up my ears. Maybe I would learn something about Sindhu's bunch. I had
bones to pick with them. I had not yet found any evidence to suggest that it
was not them who kidnapped me and took a crack at murdering Mogaba.
Still,
I could not imagine why they would bother.
Sindhu
and Lady talked. Her questions sounded vaguely doctrinal. Sindhu's replies made
no sense.
Once
Lady interrupted the interview to be sick. A skinny little gink named Narayan,
who kept hanging around, seemed inordinately pleased. I noted that Sindhu
showed him considerable deference.
I was
not happy. The little I knew of their cult assured me that I did not want them
influencing my captains.
The
interview ended. Blade's cronies took me away. I got to hang out with Swan and
Mather, meaning I had somebody to speak a reasonable language with for a while,
but soon I felt like a forgotten man.
"What
are we doing?" I asked Swan.
"I
don't know. Cordy and I just tag along behind Her Lordship pretending not to be
watching her for the Prabrindrah Drah and Radisha."
"Pretending?"
"Ain't
much good being a spy if everybody knows it, is there? Anyway, Cordy gets to do
all the worrying. He's the one playing pattycake with the Woman."
"You
mean that ain't just a vicious rumor? He's really plooking the Radisha?"
"Hard
to believe, ain't it? She's got a face like . . . Hey! Cordy! Where's them
cards? We got us a pigeon here thinks he can play tonk."
"Thinks?
Swan, you're gonna think I invented the game if you get into it with me."
Mather
was a nondescript character of average height with ginger hair who stood out
only because he was white in a land where nobody but harem girls, kept out of
the sun from birth, had fair skin. He asked, "Willow's mouth running away
with him again?"
"Maybe.
I've made a career of playing tonk. Hell, they boot you out of the Black
Company if you don't make journeyman player."
Mather
shrugged. "Then you'll twist Willow's head back around straight for him.
Here. Deal. I'll see if the mighty general Blade wants to sit in."
Swan
grumbled, "That would take him out of sight of Lady." Sounded like
some sour grapes there. Mather showed him a smirk that confirmed my guess.
"What
is it about her?" I asked. "Every damned guy that walks on his hind
legs gets near her for five minutes, he starts floating around with his tongue
hanging down, banging into things. But I've been around her for years. I can
see she's got the right stuff in the right places put together about as good as
you could want but I don't think I could get excited even if she didn't used to
be the Lady and she wasn't married to the Old Man." Not that that was
literally true. They had not even bothered to jump over a sword.
Swan
shuffled. "Cut?"
I cut.
I always cut. One-Eye taught me that.
Swan
asked, "You really don't feel it? Man, she comes around me and my brain
goes south. And she's a widow now so ..."
"I
don't think so."
"What?"
"She
ain't no widow. Croaker is still alive."
"Shit.
That'd be my luck, too. You want to stack Cordy a hand, make him think he's got
a winner, then skunk him?" As soon as I shook my head he wanted to know
how come I thought Croaker was alive. I evaded a definitive answer for the few
moments it took Mather to return.
"Blade's
too busy looking for an angle to use while he's close to the magic. You load me
up again, Willow?No? Bullshit. Let's just pick them up and deal them
over."
"Ain't
this the story of my life?" I grumbled. "Look here." I had two
aces, a pair of deuces and a trey. An automatic winner, damned near couldn't be
beat. "And that's a true natural, no help."
Swan
snickered. "Don't matter. You don't got anything to do anyway."
"You
got a point. Why don't you guys come over to Dejagore? I'll buy you a mug of
One-Eye's home brew."
"Ha!
Competition, huh?" Swan and Mather had gone into the brewing business back
when they first came to Taglios. They were out of the racket now, among their
reasons the fact that the priests of all the native religions condemned the use
of alcohol.
"I
doubt it. The only thing good about their brew is it gets you skunked."
"That
was the only good thing about the rat piss we made," Mather said. "My
dear old daddy the brewmaster rolled over every time we tapped another
keg."
"We
never laid any beer up," Swan countered. "Soon as it was ripe we
skimmed the scum off and poured it down Taglian throats. And don't buy that
shit about his daddy, neither. Old Man Mather was a tax assessor who was so
dumb he didn't take bribes."
"Shut
up and deal." Mather snatched up his cards. "He did brew his own
beer. And Swan's old man was a hod carrier."
"But
a handsome one, Cordy. And a lover. I inherited his good looks."
"You
take after your mother. And if you don't do something about that hair pretty
soon you're going to wind up in somebody's harem."
This
was a side of these guys I had not seen before. But I had not spent much time
loafing with them. They were not Company. I kept my mouth shut and concentrated
on my cards and let them tell me about who they used to be before the
wander-dust settled on their shoes and set them roving against all odds.
"What about you, Murgen?" Swan asked after he noticed that I was
winning more than my share of hands. "Where did you come from?"
I told
them about growing up on a farm. There wasn't anything exciting about my life
until I decided that farming wasn't what I wanted to do. I joined one of Lady's
armies, found out I didn't like the way things were done there, deserted and
joined up with the Black Company, which was the only place I could hide with
the provost after me.
Mather
asked, "You ever regret leaving home?" "Every goddamned day,
Mather. Every goddamned day. It was boring raising potatoes but not one time
did I ever did have a spud try to stick a knife in me. I was hardly ever hungry
and almost never cold and the landlord was all right. He made sure his tenants
had enough before he took his share. He didn't live much better than we did.
Oh, and the only magic we ever saw was the kind your wandering conjurers
perform at town fairs." "So why not go home?" "Can't."
"If
you're careful and don't look prosperous and don't go around pissing people off
you can travel almost anywhere safely. We did."
"I
can't go home because home ain't there no more. A Rebel army came through a
couple years after I left." The Company passed through later still,
marching from somewhere unpleasant to somewhere where we would be unhappy. The
whole country had been turned desert in the name of freedom from the tyranny of
the Lady's empire.
61
Lady
sent for me after six days. I had shaken the runs and had eaten well enough to
regain a few of the pounds I lost in the pen. I still looked like a refugee
from hell. And I was. I was indeed.
Lady
did not look good. Tired, pale, under severe pressure, apparently still
fighting the sickness that had her puking the other day. She wasted no time on
small talk. "I'm sending you back to Dejagore, Murgen. We're getting
disturbing reports about Mogaba."
I
nodded. I had heard some of them. Every night more rafts crossed the lake. The
deserters and refugees always were astonished to learn that Shadowspinner was
dead and Lady controlled his army though that was evaporating through
desertion, too.
Lady
was a hard one. My guess was she meant to let the problem posed by Mogaba solve
itself despite what that would cost Taglios and the Black Company.
"Why?"
That was not smart. All those Taglians in there had relatives back home. Many
were people of place and substance, for it was that sort who had volunteered to
defend Taglios.
"I
need you to just go back and be yourself. But write things down. Hone your
skills. Keep the Company together. Be prepared for anything."
I
grunted. That wasn't something I wanted to hear, knowing that the siege could
be ended right now.
Lady
sensed my reservations. She smiled wanly, made a sudden gesture. "Sleep,
Murgen."
I
collapsed on the spot.
She was
her nasty old self.
My mind
would not clear. The Taglians who had helped me leave Dejagore were like
zombies. They did not talk and seemed almost blind. "Down!" I
muttered. "Patrol coming." They did what I said but like men heavily
drugged.
Patrols
were few by day. It was easy to elude them. It was not their mission to keep
people out, anyway. We reached lakeside without any trouble.
"Rest,"
I ordered. "Wait for dark." I was not sure why we had crossed the
hills by day. I did not recall starting. "Have I been acting real
weird?" I asked.
The
taller Taglian shook his head slowly, not quite sure. He was more confused than
I was.
I said,
"I feel like I walked out of a fog a couple hours ago. I remember getting
captured. I remember them keeping us in a nasty pen. I know there was a fight
or something. But I don't remember how we got away."
"Nor
do I, sir," the shorter soldier said. "I do have a very strong
feeling that we need to get back to our comrades quickly. But I don't know
why."
"How
about you?"
The
taller man nodded, frowning. He was going to bust a vein trying to remember.
I said,
"Maybe Shadowspinner did something to us and let us go. That's worth
keeping in mind-especially if you have urges that really surprise you."
After
dark we stole along the shoreline till we found a raft, jumped aboard and
headed for Dejagore. And discovered immediately that we were going to get
nowhere using poles. The water was too deep. We ended up using poles and broken
boards as inefficient paddles. It took us half the night to make the crossing.
And then, naturally, everything went to hell.
One-Eye
was on watch and had been passing the time making love to a keg of beer. He
heard water splash and people ask for a hand up and concluded that the evil
hordes were upon him, whereupon he flung fireballs hither and yon so any handy
archers could plink us.
One-Eye
recognized me before more than three or four arrows whizzed past. He yelled for
a ceasefire. But the damage had been done. The Nar at the North Gate saw us.
We were
far enough away that they should not recognize faces. But the possibility that
the Old Crew might have outside contacts would get Mogaba's interest.
"Hey,
Kid, good to see you," One-Eye said as I clambered to the top of the wall.
"We thought you was dead. We was going to have a funeral in a few more
days if we got time. I been stalling it, account of if you was officially dead
then I'd have to start keeping the Annals." Generously, he offered me a
drink from his very own unwashed for a fortnight mug. I declined the honor. "You
all right, Kid?"
"I
don't know. Maybe you can tell me." I told him what I could remember.
"You
have another spell?"
"If
I did these guys had it with me."
"Interesting.
Come around and see me about it tomorrow."
"Tomorrow?"
"I'm
gonna be off watch in ten minutes and I intend to hit the sack. And you need
some sleep yourself."
My pal.
Don't know what I would do if I didn't have One-Eye to worry about me.
62
Bucket
wakened me. "One of Mogaba's guys is here, Murgen. Says His Majesty wants
to see you." I groaned. "Does it have to be so bright out
there?" I had not bothered to go down into the warrens.
"He's
pissed off. We've been pretending you were here but couldn't talk to him.
Goblin and One-Eye put doubles of you on the wall sometimes so the Nar could
see you."
"And
now you have the real Murgen back you want to throw him to the wolf."
"Uh
. . . Well . . . He didn't ask for nobody else." Meaning he did not want
Goblin or One-Eye. He wanted to stay away from those two.
"Find
my bitty buddies and tell them I need them. Now." The wizards turned up at
their own leisure, of course. I told them, "Put me in a litter and lug me
over to the citadel. We're going to admit that you've been lying about me but
only because I was totally sick. What we were doing on that raft last night was
taking baths. You thought it would be cute to pop off a few fireballs while I
had my pants down."
One-Eye
started to complain but before he could start I growled, "I'm not face
Mogaba without backup. He don't have any reason to be nice anymore."
"He
won't be in a good mood," Goblin predicted. "There's been rioting.
Food shortages are getting really bad. He won't turn one grain of rice loose.
Even his handpicked Taglian sergeants have started to desert."
"It's
all falling apart for him," I said. "He was going to take over and
show the world wonders but his followers can't match his iron will."
"And
we're some kind of philanthropic brotherhood?" One-Eye muttered.
"We
never kill nobody who don't ask for it. Come on. Let's do it. And be ready for
anything. Both of you."
But
first we went up to the battlements, both so I could see this world by daylight
and so the Nar at the North Gate could see me looking sick before I presented
myself that way.
The
water level was just eight feet below the ramparts, higher than Hong Tray's
prediction. "Any flooding inside?"
"Mogaba
sealed the gates somehow. He has Jaicuri working parties bucket-brigading what
seepage there is." "Good for him. How about down below?"
"There's some seepage in the catacombs. Not a lot. We could keep up by
hauling it up in buckets."
I
grunted. I stared at Shadowspinner's lake. I saw more corpses than I could
count. "Those didn't float up from the mounds, did they?"
Goblin
told me, "Mogaba threw people off the wall during the riots. And some
might be from rafts that turned over or broke up."
I
squinted. I could just make out a mounted patrol beyond the water. A raft with
Jaicuri piled high had been caught by daylight. The people aboard were trying
to move away from the waiting patrol by paddling with their hands.
Thai
Dei turned up so we knew his people were watching. I figured he would want me
to visit the Speaker. But he said nothing. I told my bearers, "Take me to
his worship."
As we
approached I observed, "The citadel looks like something out of a spook
story." And it did, with the sky overcast behind it and crows swarming
around. Dejagore was a paradise for crows. They were going to get too fat to
fly. Maybe we would get fat eating them.
The Nar
at the entrance would not let One-Eye and Goblin inside. "So take me
home," I told them. "Wait!"
"Stick
it, buddy. I got no need to put up with Mogaba's crap. The Lieutenant is alive.
So is the Captain, probably. Mogaba ain't shit nowhere but inside his own head
anymore."
"You
could have at least argued until we were rested up."
One-Eye
started shuffling sideways so he could turn and head back down the steps.
Ochiba
caught us before we reached street level. He was cast in the same mold as all
Nar. His face remained neutral. "Apologies, Standardbearer. Won't you
reconsider?"
"Reconsider
what? I don't especially want to see Mogaba. He's been eating magic mushrooms
or chewing lucky weed or something. I been shitting my guts out for over a
week. I ain't in no shape to play games with no homicidal lunatic."
Something
fluttered behind Ochiba's dark eyes. Maybe he agreed. Maybe there was another
war going on inside him, a struggle between keeping faith with Gea-Xle's
greatest Nar ever and keeping faith with his own humanity.
I was
not going to pursue it. Any hint of outside interest would push waverers in the
direction of "That's the way it's always been."
That
was the top two, then, quietly questioning Mogaba's way. If these guys doubted
him things were probably worse than I thought.
"As
you wish." Ochiba told the sentries, "Let the litterbearers in."
Nobody
missed the significance of who my litterbearers were. It was a pretty direct
statement.
I felt
comfortably confrontational.
63
Was
Mogaba happy to see Goblin and One-Eye, and them looking so fit? You better
believe he wasn't. But he did not pursue his displeasure. He just ticked
something on his mental get-even slate. He would make me even more unhappy than
he had planned. Later.
"Can
you sit up?" he asked, almost like he cared.
"Yeah.
I made sure. That's partly why I took so long. That and I wanted to make sure
I'd stay rational."
"Oh?"
"I've
been suffering severe fevers and dysentery for over a week. Last night they
took me out and threw me in the water to cool me down. That worked."
"I
see. Come to the table, please."
Goblin
and One-Eye helped me into a chair. They put on a fine show.
There
were just six people in the conference chamber, us three and Mogaba, Ochiba and
Sindawe. Through the window behind Mogaba I saw water and hills. And crows.
They squabbled over space on the window sill, though none would come inside. An
albino turned an especially baleful pink eye my way.
I
suppose we looked too hungry.
For one
instant I saw that same room in another time, with Lady and some of the same
faces around the same table. Mogaba was not among them. The window behind them
opened on greyness.
One-Eye
pinched my earlobe. "Kid, now ain't the time."
Mogaba
watched intently.
"Less
recovered than I thought," I explained. I wondered what the vision meant.
And vision it was because it was too fully realized for imagination.
Mogaba
settled into a chair opposite me. He pretended solicitousness, avoided his
usual assertiveness.
"We
face numerous grave problems, Standardbearer. They are out there and
indifferent to whatever animosities we have developed amongst ourselves."
Goddamn!
Was he going to turn reasonable on me?
"They
will be there whether or not we want to believe the Lieutenant or Captain
survived. We will have to face them because I do not expect to be relieved any
time soon."
I would
not argue with that.
"We
would be better off had Lady not interfered this last time. We are isolated and
trapped now because the Shadowmaster was forced to find a solution for managing
two fronts."
I
nodded. We were in a worse situation. On the other hand, we would not have
yowling hordes piling over the wall every few nights anymore. Nor would Mogaba
be flinging men hither and yon without regard for their lives, just trying to
irritate the Southerners into doing something stupid.
Mogaba
glanced out the window. We could see two Shadowlander patrols raising dust in
the hills. "He can starve us out now."
"Maybe."
Mogaba
grimaced but controlled his anger. "Yes?"
"For
no rational reason I feel confident that our friends will break us out."
"I
must confess that I remain a stranger to that sort of faith. Although I concede
the importance of maintaining an optimistic aspect in front of the
soldiers."
Was I
going to argue? No. He was more right than I could be.
"So,
Standardbearer, how do we survive a protracted siege when most of our food
stores are exhausted? How do we recover the standard once we do get out of
these straits?"
"I
don't have any answers. Although I think the standard is in friendly hands
already." Why was he interested? Almost every time we talked he asked
something about the standard. Did he believe possessing it would legitimize
him?
"How
so?" He was surprised.
"The
Widowmaker that was here the first time carried the real standard."
"You're sure?" "I know it," I promised. "Then share
your thoughts about food." "We could try fishing." Wisecracking
was not a good idea with Mogaba. It just made Mogaba angry.
"Ain't
no joke," Goblin snapped. "That water comes down here from regular
rivers. There's got to be fish."
The
little shit wasn't as stupid as he acted sometimes.
Mogaba
frowned. "Do we have anyone who knows anything about fishing?" he
asked Sindawe.
"I
doubt it." They meant among their Taglian soldiers, of course. Nar are
warriors, back for a dozen generations. They do not sully themselves doing
unheroic work.
I was
negligent. I failed to mention that the Nyueng Bao came from country where
fishing was, probably, a way of life.
"It's
a thought," Mogaba told me. "And there is always baked crow." He
glanced back at the window. "But most Taglians won't eat flesh."
"A
conundrum," I agreed.
"I
will not surrender."
No
reply seemed adequate.
"You
have no resources either?"
"Less
than you," I lied. We still had a little rice from the catacombs. But not
much. We were stretching ourselves every way possible, in accordance with hints
recorded in the Annals. We did not look like famine victims. Not quite yet.
We
looked, I noted, less well fed than did the Nar.
"Suggestions
for reducing the number of unproductive mouths?"
"I'm
letting my worn out Taglians and any locals who want build rafts and go. But I
don't let them take anything with them."
He
controlled his anger again. "That does consume valuable timber. But it is
another thought worth consideration."
I
studied Sindawe and Ochiba. They remained jet statues. They were not even
breathing, it seemed. They expressed no opinions.
Mogaba
glared at me. "I feared this meeting would be this nonproductive. You
haven't even thrown the Annals in my face."
"The
Annals aren't magic. What they say about sieges is plain commonsense stuff. Be
stubborn. Ration. Don't support the nonproductive. Control the spread of
plague. Don't exhaust your enemy's patience if there is no hope of outlasting
him. If surrender is inevitable do it while your enemy is still amenable to
terms."
"This
enemy never offered."
I
wondered about that, although the Shadowmasters did have a tendency to think
like gods.
"Thank
you, Standardbearer. We will examine our options and keep you informed of what
we mean to do."
Goblin
and One-Eye helped me ease my chair back. They settled me into the litter.
Mogaba said nothing else and I could think of nothing I wanted to tell him. The
other Nar just stood there awkwardly and watched us go.
"What
was that in aid of?" I asked once we were clear. "I expected yelling
and threats."
"He
wanted to pick your brains," Goblin said.
"While
he made up his mind if he was going to kill you," One-Eye added
cheerfully.
"Oh,
that's real encouraging."
"He
did decide, Murgen. And he didn't pick the option you want to hear. It's time
to start being real careful."
We did
make it home unharmed.
64
Don't
bother dragging me up there till we find out what Uncle wants." Goblin and
One-Eye were at the foot of steps leading to the battlements. Doj was up top,
looking down.
"I
wasn't planning to carry your dead ass anywhere anyhow anymore," One-Eye
told me. "Far as I'm concerned this exercise was for camouflage."
Uncle
Doj started downward.
I
stared at the wall. Tiny beads of sweat covered it, but that was because the
stone was cooler than the air, not because water had begun seeping through from
outside.
The
Shadowmasters were good builders.
"Stone
Soldier. You are well?"
"Not
bad for a guy with the runs. Ready to dance on your grave, Stubby. We got
business?"
"The
Speaker wishes to see you. Your excursion was not successful?" He moved
his head to indicate my trip outside.
"If
you call spending two weeks as a guest of the Shadowmaster a success I tore
them up, Uncle. Otherwise, all I did was get sick, lose some weight, then have
barely enough sense left to run for it when some Taglians hit Shadowspinner's
camp with a nuisance raid. That's all right. I can walk that far." Just
don't let me fall down any rabbit holes.
I could
walk to the Speaker's place easily but why give up the pretense of weakness if
it might be useful?
Nothing
changed with the Speaker's crew. Except that this time one smell was absent. I
noticed that as soon as I stepped inside. I could not identify the missing
odor, though.
The
Speaker was ready. Hong Tray was in place. The beautiful one had tea brewing.
Ky Dam
smiled. "Thai Dei ran ahead." He read my curiosity from my glance and
flaring nostrils. "Danh has gone to his judgment. At last. A bleak season
has ended for this house."
I could
not help myself. I looked at the young woman. I found her looking at me. Her
gaze shifted immediately, but not so fast that I did not feel guilty when I
returned attention to the Speaker.
The old
man missed nothing. Neither did he get excited about something best left
ignored. He was wise, was Ky Dam.
I had
come to respect that frail oldster a lot.
"The
hard times have come, Standardbearer, and will lead to more terrible
tomorrows." He reviewed my discussion with Mogaba well enough to convince
me that someone had watched us.
"Why
tell me this?"
"To
support my claim when I tell you we spy on the black men. After your departure
they spoke only their native tongue until they sent messengers to the tribunes
of the cohorts and other senior Taglians. They are to gather at
suppertime."
"Sounds
big."
The old
man bowed slightly, "I would like you to see something for yourself. You
know these men more certainly than do I. You can determine if my suspicions are
well-founded."
"You
want me to spy on that meeting?"
"Something
of the sort." The old man did not tell me the whole story. Not then. He
wanted me walking into it cold. "Doj will conduct you."
65
Doj
conducted me. The way led through cellars as intricately connected as ours but
less care had been used in the tunneling. The people who did this just wanted
to be able to sneak away. They had had no intention of hiding. They must have
been Jaicuri collaborators in Stormshadow's administration, acting for her. She
would have wanted an emergency exit.
"I'm
surprised at you," I told Uncle Doj. "I wouldn't think underground
would occur to swamp people. I don't suppose there are a lot of tunnels in the
delta."
"Not
many." He smiled.
My
guess is they found the escape route through sheer blind luck, maybe coupled
with an informed suspicion about how Stormshadow's mind worked.
Getting
into the citadel, then, was no problem, though it required some crawling. The
architects had not been concerned with Stormshadow's dignity. It was tough for
me. I was not yet back to my best.
We came
to a small open space beneath a ladder. That rose straight up into infinity, so
far as I could see by the light of one feeble candle. I had a feeling the
candle was a luxury laid on for me, that the Nyueng Bao made this journey
entirely in darkness.
I could
not have endured that. I dislike enclosed places intensely despite having lived
in them. Close places, darkness, recurring spells and visions were not a
combination I wanted to tempt.
I did
seem more stable lately, I reflected. I set a hand and foot on the ladder.
Uncle
Doj grabbed my wrist, shook his head.
"What?
Isn't that the way to the council chamber?" My whisper rattled off like
the scurry of mice.
"Not
what the Speaker wants you to see." Doj used almost no air when he
whispered. "Come."
There
was no crawling now, just a lot of easing along sideways in an airspace almost
too narrow for Uncle. His belly was going to ache from rubbing against stone.
I
learned that there was a lot more to Stormshadow's citadel than I had seen in
the little time I spent there these past few months. Down below there, beneath
the surrounding plazas, were countless unsuspected storerooms and prison cells,
armories and barracks rooms, cisterns and smithies. I whispered, "They
have supplies down here to hold out for years." Meaning the Nar and their
favorites, holed up inside the citadel. Stormshadow had laid in a great store
against the evil day.
Mogaba
had lied to me, just trying to find out how well off we Old Crew were.
Was
that what the old man wanted me to know?
Was
this why the Nyueng Bao had seemed to prosper while everyone else became gaunt?
Were they nibbling at these stores like mice, taking just a little here and
there so their predations would go unnoticed?
Uncle
Doj beckoned. "Hurry."
Soon I
began to hear a distant chanting. "We may not be in time, Bone Warrior.
Hurry."
I
didn't slug him mostly because the racket would have alerted the singing men.
I knew
they were Nar before I saw a thing. I had heard the rhythms and style before,
though not these particular lyrics. Always before, though, there had been joy
in their work songs and celebrations. This song was cold and grim.
Uncle
Doj left the candle, tugged my elbow. We continued to step sideways until,
suddenly, we were in an ordinary passageway, not some tight, secret squeeze
behind a wall. Nothing concealed the entrance to the hidden ways. That was just
a shadowed corner unlikely to entice a closer look.
There
was light out there, from candles in sconces widely spaced. The people in
charge were frugal despite their wealth.
Uncle
Doj placed a finger to his lips. We were near dangerous people who might detect
us in an instant. He dropped to his knees and led me right into a large chamber
where most of the Nar had gathered. Lighting was nonexistent except down where
they were. Doj got behind a pillar. I squatted behind a low, dusty table just
inside the doorway. I wished I was as dark as the Nar. My forehead must be
shining like a little half moon.
This
life hardens you. Too soon you have seen so much that when you encounter
another something terrible you don't howl and run in circles, snapping at your
tail. But most of us still appreciate horror if horror is there. Horror was
there.
There
was an altar. Mogaba and Ochiba were involved in something ceremonial. Above
the altar stood a small statue of dark stone, a four-armed woman dancing. I was
too far away to make out details but I was pretty sure sure she had vampire
fangs and six teats. She might be wearing a necklace of baby skulls. The Nar
might give her another name but she was Kina. The worship offered by the Nar
was not that described in the Jaicuri scriptures, though.
The
Deceivers do not want to spill blood. That is why they are called Stranglers.
The Nar
not only spilled blood on behalf of their goddess, they drank it. And it looked
like they had been doing so for some time down there. Drained corpses hung to
one side. Their latest sacrifice, a hapless Jaicuri, got hoisted up with those
soon after I arrived.
The Nar
were practical in their religion. After the grim ceremony ended they began
butchering one of the bodies.
I got
down and crawled out of there. I did not give one rat's ass what Uncle Doj
thought.
I have
seen a lot with the Company, including tortures and cruelties almost beyond
comprehension and inhumanities I do not have the capacity to fathom, but never
had I encountered socially-sanctioned cannibalism.
I did
not puke or boil over in outrage. That would be silly. I just put distance
between me and that till I could speak without worrying about who might
overhear. "I have seen enough. Let's get out of here."
Uncle
Doj responded with a thin smile and lifted eyebrow.
"I
have to relay this. I have to write it down. We may not survive this siege.
They will. Word of what they are has to survive, too." He watched me
closely. Was he wondering if the rest of us also enjoyed the occasional long
pig roast as well?
Probably.
This
sort of thing might go some toward explaining our ambiguous reception in these
parts.
Mogaba
could not read. If it did not occur to him that the dark side of the Nar was no
secret anymore I could leave word in my Annals, to be salvaged by Lady or the
Old Man.
"They
are all down there," Uncle said. "So we will return by a swifter
path." By which he meant we would stroll through regular passageways just
like we belonged there.
"What's
that noise?" I asked.
Uncle
gestured for silence. We stole forward.
We
discovered a group of Taglian soldiers bricking up a sallyport we could have
used to leave. Why were they doing that? That door could not be broken open
from the outside. It still had Stormshadow's spells protecting it.
Uncle
pulled me back, headed another direction. Obviously he knew the citadel quite
well. And I had no difficulty imgaining him roaming around in there all the
time, just for the hell of it. He seemed like that kind of guy.
66
You
look like somebody ate your favorite puppy," Goblin told me. Cracks like
that could be heard all the time now that there were no more dogs. There were
just two sources of meat left. The Nar exploited both. We restricted ourselves
to stupid crows.
I told
Goblin and One-Eye what I had seen. Uncle Doj stood behind me, quietly
disgruntled because I wanted to see my own people before I visited the Speaker.
I was barely halfway through it when One-Eye interrupted. "You got to tell
the whole Company this one, Kid." For once he was as serious as a spear
through the gut.
And for
once Goblin agreed with One-Eye without any big groan and moan about the
unfairness of it all. "You need to get this word out exactly the way you
want it known to everybody. There's going to be a lot of talk. You don't want
anybody building it up worse than it is when they pass it along."
"Get
them together, then. While I'm waiting I'm going to skim those Jaicuri books.
There may be something else I need to tell them."
"May
I join you?" Uncle Doj asked.
"No.
Go tell the old man that I'll be there as soon as I can.
This is
family."
"As
you will." He said something to Thai Dei, stalked away.
Bucket
interrupted my reading. "Got them together, Murgen. All but Clete. He's
off somewhere whoring and even his brothers don't know where to find him."
"All
right."
"It
something bad? You got that look."
"Yeah."
"It
can get worse than it already is?"
"You're
going to hear all about it in just a little bit."
In five
minutes I got up in front of sixty men and told my tale, marvelling as I did
that a band so frail and few could be so feared. More, I marvelled that there
were so many of us when, hardly more than two years ago, there were just seven
of us pretending to be the Black Company.
"You
guys want to keep it down until I'm done?" The news had them excited in a
grim way. "Listen up. That is the word. They're making human sacrifices
and eating the corpses. But that ain't the whole story. Ever since they joined
us at Gea-Xle they've been hinting and even saying right out that us northern
guys are heretics. That means they think the whole Company used to do things
their way."
That
started everybody talking and yelling.
I
pounded a mason's hammer on a block of wood. "Shut up, you morons! It
ain't the way the Company ever was. The Nar never kept any Annals. They would
know that if they had. But they can't even read."
I could
not be absolutely sure that human sacrifice was never a Company rite. We were
missing several early volumes of the Annals and I now suspected strongly that
our earliest forebrethren did follow a dark and hungry god with breath so foul
and cruel that even oral histories were enough to keep the native people
terrified.
Most of
the guys did not care about the implications. They were just angry because the
Nar were going to make life harder for them.
I told
them, "This is one more thing to make trouble between us and them. I want
you all to realize that we might have to fight them before we get out of here.
"Tonight
I'm bringing back some traditional business that we have let slide since
Croaker got to be Captain. We are going to have regular readings from the
Annals so you all know what you have become part of. This first reading is from
the Book of Kette, this part probably set down by the Annalist Agrip when the
Company was in service to the Paingod of Cho'n Delor." Our forebrethren
endured a long and bitter siege then, though there had been a lot more of them
to suffer. Additionally, I planned readings from books Croaker recorded on the
Plain of Fear, when the Company lived underground for so long.
I
dismissed the men to supper. "One-Eye. No more groaning when I announce a
reading. All right? These guys didn't live through that stuff."
"Cho'n
Delor was way before my time, too." "Then you need to hear about
it."
"Kid,
I been hearing about it for two hundred years. Every damned Annalist that ever
was wallowed in the horrors of Cho'n Delor. I wish I could get my hands on
those guys who did the Book of Kette. You know Kette wasn't even the Annalist?
He was
the . . ."
"Goblin.
Grab Otto and Hagop. I want a little confab with the oldest Old Crew."
We five
put our heads together, conjured a little something for the meanness. Once we
had a scheme I said, "I'll see what the Speaker thinks."
67
Ky Dam
listened patiently, as an adult will to a bright child with an ingenious but
impractical idea. He told me, "You are aware this could spark
fighting?"
"Sure.
But that's inevitable. Doj says Mogaba decided that at our meeting. Goblin and
One-Eye agree." So did Hagop and Otto. None of us favored a get along
effort. "There are more of us than there are Nar." But their Taglians
way outnumbered OUR and there was no way to guess how the Taglians with either
group would jump.
The old
man turned to Hong Tray. A quizzical expression accentuated the lines at the
corners of his eyes.
Ky
Sahra knelt beside me, presenting tea. This was a step beyond anything
previous. She met my wondering gaze. I don't think I slobbered.
Hong
Tray observed without reaction. That made her far calmer than I was. She
focused on her husband, nodded. He said, "There will be fighting. Soon.
The Jaicuri will revolt."
That
was not what I wanted to hear. I asked, "Will they bother your people or
mine?" I should not have shoved in. I apologized immediately.
Ky
Sahra poured more tea for me, before even she served her grandparents.
Ky Gota
manifested like a demon conjured for its serrated tongue. She barked at her
daughter in a harsh, lilting gale.
The old
man looked up, said one word sharply. Hong Tray supported him with a complete
sentence in what I would have to call a sharp whisper. It seemed she could
speak no other way.
Ky Gota
withdrew. There were well-defined limits and absolute hierarchy inside the Ky
family.
I
glanced at the beautiful woman. She met my eye again, rocked back and rose.
Flushing.
Was
something going on? They would not try to manipulate me, would they?
It
would not work. No woman, not even this woman, was that special. And Ky Dam had
seen enough of me to guess that about me.
If he
wanted to manipulate me he would have better luck trading me the straight poop
on why the hell everybody pissed blue when the Company got mentioned.
He and
the old woman batted whispers back and forth in flurries. Suddenly, he told me,
"We will join you in this enterprise, Standardbearer. Provisionally. Hong
believes that fighting between the Jaicuri and the soldiers of the black men is
imminent. It will be fierce but might not touch the rest of us. That would
provide sufficient distraction. But I must insist that Doj has the option to
end it if it risks calling unfriendly attention to our people."
"Excellent.
Of course. Done. Though I would have tried it without you."
Ky Dam
permitted himself a small smile, either at my enthusiasm or at the prospect of
adding a little more misery to Mogaba's life.
After
dark, assuming the riots got started, we were going to steal Mogaba's food
stores.
68
It
started like a well-rehearsed play where Mogaba's characters were desperate to
please their audience. The rioting, that is. Uncle Doj and I formed work
parties to take advantage. We got into the storage chambers without challenge,
ten Old Crew and ten Nyueng Bao. We started dragging off sacks of rice and
flour, sugar and beans. The riots were nasty from the start. They swamped the
whole southern half of Dejagore. Every man Mogaba controlled was out there helping
crush the rebellion. And every Jaicuri man and boy seemed to want to get at the
Nar, even if they had to exterminate the whole First Legion to reach them.
My
people went on the alert, established in strong positions, long before
nightfall. Likewise the Nyueng Bao, who had no immediate trouble. We ambushed
one mob. A shower of missiles from front, sides, and above swiftly changed
their minds.
Mogaba's
men had more problems. They were not ready. Worse, they were scattered, often
in isolated work parties and patrols.
For a
while everybody joked and cracked wise and speculated on Mogaba's first words
after the fighting ended and he found his cellars plundered.
I ran
into Bucket my second trip back. "Beans," I told him, dropping a huge
sack. "The change of diet will do us good."
"It's
real bloody out there this time, Murgen. Mogaba has asked for support twice. We
told him we couldn't find you."
"Well,
keep on not being able. Unless it looks like we would end up worse off if we
didn't help."
"That's
not likely. He has most of the weapons. His men have been throwing people off
the wall by the hundreds, just anybody, whether or not they're rebelling, men,
women and children."
"That's
Mogaba's way. What about those fires?" There were a few. Whenever there is
disorder somebody starts burning things down.
"They're
burning themselves out."
"Everything
is going fine, then. But keep an eye out."
I went
back to my looting happy as the proverbial clam. This might be the end of
Mogaba as a royal pain in the ass.
Uncle
Doj caught me in the storage chamber later. "Some Taglian soldiers are
abandoning their posts for the safety of the citadel. If we continue this
raiding we will get caught."
"Yeah.
If we don't get spotted Mogaba will blame it on natives who knew about the
passageways." This raid was going to cost us our opportunity to spy on any
more staff meetings.
It was
worth it.
Would I
feel the same way tomorrow, when Mogaba began looking for his stores? When I
had a full belly?
"There
is a small problem, Standardbearer," Uncle Doj said a while later. Each of
us staggered under a last sack of rice. We were the last brigands out.
"What's
that?"
"News
of our success is sure to leak."
"Why?
Only a few people know. It's in all their interests to stay clammed."
"Someone
talked about what I showed you earlier."
"Huh?"
"The
dark ceremonies. Someone talked. The rumors sparked tonight's riots."
"I
don't believe that. They were too organized."
"There
was an organized cadre, naturally, but this uprising was more widespread. It is
also out of control."
"Whatever
you say." He had spent his evening with me. He had had no chance to
observe any riots.
Before
he could respond Thai Dei popped out of the darkness. He gobbled away, becoming
too animated for the space. If he killed my candle I was going to choke him. As
soon as I found him. "What's happening?"
"The
black men are trying to break open the north gate and flood the city."
"They're
what?" That would take care of the riots, all right. But not even Mogaba
would go that far. Would he?
Uncle
Doj and I did our best to run carrying sacks of rice. I bet we looked silly.
69
Otto.
Hagop. One-Eye. Goblin. Geek. Freak. Bucket and Candles. You guys come with me.
The al-Khul company will help us. Wheezer went to get them. We'll go straight
along the battlements. If the Nar get in the way we trample them. If they fight
us, we kill them. That understood?"
Not
even Goblin or One-Eye tried to lawyer. We were some of the people Mogaba meant
to drown.
The
Taglians arrived. They were Vehdna by religion and the best Taglians attached
to the Company. They were reliable and almost friendly. Of six hundred who had
come south from Taglios months ago only about sixty were left.
I
explained what was happening, what I wanted to do about it and how they could
help. They would overrun anyone trying to open the gate after Goblin and
One-Eye softened them up. "Don't hurt anybody unless they just plain force
you."
"Why
not?" Candles demanded. "They're trying to hurt us,"
"Mogaba
is. These guys are just following orders. I'll bet you we don't find any Nar
there when we get there. And I'll bet you that if they open the gate they get
hurt as bad as anybody else. Mogaba doesn't need them anymore."
"Let's
just do it," Goblin groused. "Or go back and catch a few beers."
I moved
them out.
Maybe
my blackouts gave me the gift of prophecy. There were no Nar at the North Gate.
The fighting was so brief and desultory it almost did not take place. The
Taglians working there fled. Damn! Mogaba would find out who foiled his latest
nastiness. I told One-Eye, "This will mean no more pretending we're
buddies."
"Yeah.
Show me how to sneak into the citadel. I'll put a sleep spell on him, then
leave pieces of him all over his crazy temple."
That
did not sound like a bad idea.
We had
no opportunity to implement it.
Somebody
yelled up at me. I peered down into the gloom. It was Uncle Doj. I had not
included any Nyueng Bao in this. I had not seen any need to put them onto
Mogaba's bad side, too.
"What?"
He
shouted, "This was a diversion! The real flooding will start at . .
."
"Oh,
shit! Yeah." Mogaba did know me well enough to anticipate that I might
interfere. "Come on!" I snapped. "Everyone!" I hustled down
to the street. "Where?" I demanded of Doj.
"East
Gate."
Would
Mogaba also anticipate me crossing town to spoil his game, amidst the Jaicuri
uprising?
He
might. He might hope my crew would get trapped and overrun, or badly cut up.
There was no guessing what he thought anymore. He was crazy.
One-Eye
and Goblin eased us past bands of both Jaicuri and Taglians. We skirmished with
the Jaicuri twice, our numbers and sorcery telling quickly. The light of
scattered fires set scary shadows dancing everywhere.
What a
time for the Shadowmaster to send his monsters out to play.
We
encountered barricades erected to protect the soldiers trying to open the gate.
This time we faced Nar as well as Taglians. A lot of shouting went back and
forth. Some of their Gunni Taglians tried to run away when our Vehdna Taglians
convinced them that Mogaba was trying to drown everybody. The Nar cut down
several would be deserters. I told Goblin and One-Eye, "You break up whatever
they're doing to open the gate. The rest of you, let's chase them off. Go for
the Nar first." An instant later an arrow found the eye of a Nar named
Endibo. Another of the Nar speared the Geek, an incredibly handsome youngster
who joined the Company while we were crossing the savannah north of Gea-Xle,
several years earlier. One-Eye hung the uncomplimentary name on him. He wore it
with pride, refusing to be called anything else.
For the
first time in its history, insofar as I was aware, Company brother slew sworn
brother in willful combat.
Geek's
blood brother Freak slew the Nar responsible for Geek's death but I never
learned the Nar's name so I cannot remember him here.
Most of
the First Legion Taglians took off then. Many of the al-Khul soldiers did not
want to fight, either, although those other Taglians were Gunni. Still,
quickly, a genuine small battle had friend hacking at supposed friend.
I
happened to glance back and notice that armed Jaicuri had begun to gather to
watch. Uncle Doj faced them alone, poised in an odd but apparently relaxed
ready stance, long sword vertical.
"Oh,
shit!" Goblin shrieked. "Gods damn it! Look out!"
"What?"
"We're
too late. It's going to go."
Something
began to grind and groan like the hinges of the world breaking loose. The
masonry blocking the gateway bulged inward.
The
fighting stopped fast. Everybody faced the gate.
A
sudden spear of water shot through the bulge.
Every
man there took off, Nar and Black Company, Gunni and Vehdna Taglian, Jaicuri
and lone Nyueng Bao running side by side, splitting up, heading whatever
direction felt safest but everybody always getting away from that gate.
The
masonry gave one final, mighty groan. The water roared triumphantly and charged
inside.
70
The
water thundered through the gate but there was no evidence of it yet where I
stood. I was in a good mood, considering. While passing the citadel I saw the
Nar trying to shuffle their own kind inside without admitting any Taglians. I
chuckled. Mogaba was going to bust a vein when he found the water coming in
through his cellars.
I now
understood why those soldiers had been bricking up. The flood was no spur of
the moment plan. Mogaba must have nurtured the idea from the moment that
Shadowspinner had used water to isolate Dejagore.
As we
parted I told Uncle Doj, "Swim over and see me sometime." Fifteen
minutes later I was discussing waterproofing. Our measures had begun the day we
started our warrens but not in anticipation of anything like this. Enemies
employing smoke and fire had been our real concern.
"Longo,
you guys explored every part of those catacombs? They aren't open
anywhere?" I was surprised that Stormshadow had not broken into them when
she was building the citadel. Maybe she got her location advice from
knowledgeable locals. "I didn't see anything. There were plastered good
way back when because they were below the level of the plain. But if you put
seventy feet of water out there and thirty in the streets sooner or later it
will find a way in. The best we can do really is fight a holding action."
"How
about just sealing them off?"
"We
could try. But I wouldn't bother until flooding became a threat. We close them
off, spring a leak up here, we got no place for the water to drain."
I
shrugged. "Is everything that could be damaged up high?" The guys
started preparing for the worst back when the plain started flooding. We were
not weighed down with a lot of possessions.
"We're
all right. We can hold out for a long time yet. We might want to beef up our
fortifications a little, though."
"Do
what you can." Longo and his brothers always saw a little more that could
be done.
71
Mogaba
counterattacked while the water was still just ankle deep and the rest of the
city was just starting to panic. He used all his Taglians and encouraged cruel
behavior. The slaughter was terrible.
I may
never discover the truth about the attack on the Nyueng Bao. It has been said
that the Taglian tribune Pal Subhir misunderstood his orders. Others, like me,
believe Mogaba was responsible, maybe because he suspected the Nyueng Bao of
looting his stores.
I know
he knew some had been plundered. He found out right away because he sent
soldiers down to see if any water was getting inside. By questioning a few
Jaicuri prisoners he discovered that no locals were crowing about snatching a
ton of food. Too, somebody in my outfit might have shot off his mouth again.
Whatever,
Pal Subhir's cohort, with transfer replacements to bring it to full strength,
attacked the Nyueng Bao. The tribune cannot testify. He died early. In fact, a
lot of Taglians died during the attack. But reinforcements kept turning up,
which is why I believe Mogaba engineered the massacre.
I knew
nothing about it at first. I had located no listening posts outside our
perimeter. I had no way of making sure my people would be secure out there. And
where we bordered the Nyueng Bao community there was no reason to doubt that we
would receive ample warning.
Thai
Dei was, as always, nearby. I had gone to the top of an enfilading tower to
stare at the nighted hills and brood. Would help ever come? Lately no news at
all came in from outside.
Plenty
of people wanted to leave. I could hear some of them out there now, willing to
take their chances with the Shadowmaster. Fickle folk. A little hunger and
stress and they forgot all about liberty.
"What
is that?" Thai Dei astonished me by asking a whole question. I was amazed.
I looked where he pointed.
"Looks
like a fire."
"That
is near grandfather's house. I must go."
More
curious than suspicious, I said, "I'll go with you."
He
started to argue, shrugged, told me. "Do not suffer any spells. I cannot
care for you."
So the
Nyueng Bao knew about my blackouts. And apparently suspected they were
epileptic. Interesting.
Thai
Dei surely learned plenty just standing around with his ears flapping and his
jaw tight shut. My guys hardly noticed him anymore.
Nowhere
was the water yet deeper than halfway to my knees. But it grabbed my feet when
I tried to run. And Thai Dei was in a hurry. He was sure something was wrong.
And he was correct.
We ran
through that alley where I had stumbled before and had plunged into hell. For a
second I thought I had run from Dejagore into another nightmare.
Taglian
soldiers were dragging Nyueng Bao women and children and old people out of the
buildings and throwing them to soldiers in the street. Those soldiers hacked
and slashed. Their faces were distorted with the horror of their actions but
they were out of control, far past the point where they could stop. The flicker
of firelight made everything seem more hellish and surreal.
I had
seen this before. I had seen my own brothers this way, a few times, back in the
north. The blood smell takes control and kills the mind and deadens the soul
and there is nothing human left.
Thai
Dei howled a tortured cry and flung himself toward the building the Ky family
occupied, sword wheeling overhead. The place showed no obvious signs of having
been invaded. I followed him, my own blade bare, unsure why, though I thought
fleetingly of the woman Sahra. Probably my actions were as thoughtless as those
of the Taglians.
Taglians
got in our way. Thai Dei engaged in some sort of bobbing, weaving dance. Two
soldiers fell, their throats spurting. I beat another around with my sword,
leaving him a collection of bruises and a lesson about dueling a guy a foot
taller and fifty pounds heavier.
Then
there were Taglians everywhere, most paying no attention to us. I did not have
much trouble defending myself. Those people were smaller and weaker and had a
much shorter reach. And what I managed by brute power Thai Dei accomplished
through maneuver. Hardly anyone was interested in us by the time we reached the
Speaker's door.
I had
guessed wrong before. Five or six Taglians had gotten inside. They just were
not going to leave again. Not walking.
Thai
Dei barked something in Nyueng Bao. A voice replied. I took a wild swing at one
last particularly stupid Taglian, spending the rest of the edge of my blade on
his helmet. Then I shoved the door shut and barred it. And looked around for
something to pile against it. Unfortunately, the Kys were so poor their best
furniture consisted of ragged reed mats.
A
lamp's flame rose, then another and another. For the first time I saw the
entire room the Kys occupied. I saw the mauled corpses of several invaders.
They had become focused on exploiting the beautiful woman before they finished
everyone else. Ky Gota was still mutilating the Taglian corpses. But not all
the corpses were Taglian. Not even the majority were Taglian. Only a small
percentage were Taglian.
Sahra
was holding her children to her chest but neither would ever know fear again.
Sahra's eyes were empty.
Thai
Dei made a sound like a kitten's whimper. He threw himself onto a woman. The
woman lay face downward upon two little ones she had attempted to shield with
her body. Her effort had not been in vain. The youngest, less than a year old,
was crying.
No
Taglians seemed inclined to try the door. I dropped to my knees where I had sat
talking to the Speaker so often. It appeared he and Hong Tray had watched death
arrive and had engaged it in their places of honor. The old man was stretched out
with his head and shoulders in Hong Tray's lap but his lower body remained
almost as it had been when he was seated. His wife slumped forward over him.
The
racket outside picked up. "Thai Dei!" I yelled. "Get your ass
pulled together, man."
What? The
old woman was still breathing, making a raspy, bubbly sound. Gently, I lifted
her.
She was
alive and even aware. Her eyes unglazed. She seemed unsurprised to see me. She
smiled. She managed to whisper despite the blood in her throat. "Don't
waste time on me. Take Sahra. Take the children." Her wound was a sword
thrust that had gone in outside her right breast and downward through her lung.
At her age it was a miracle she had lived this long.
She
smiled again, whispered, "Be good to her, Standardbearer."
"I
will," I promised, not understanding what she meant.
Hong
Tray managed a wink and a wince of pain. She leaned forward onto Ky Dam again.
The
racket outside increased again. "Thai Dei!" I leapt over the bodies,
flung a foot that glanced off Thai Dei's behind. "If you don't get your
ass up and get organized we're not going to help anybody." I spotted a
couple more kids cowering in the back. One of them had lighted the lamps. Other
than Sahra and her mother no adults appeared to have survived.
"Sahra!" I snapped. "Get up!" I slapped her. "Round up
those kids back there." They were too terrified to trust me even if they
knew me.
I was
still an outsider.
A
little yelling was all Thai Dei and his sister needed. Their universe suddenly
regained structure and direction, though they could not see its sense. They
just needed somebody to get them started.
We
found only one more living child and no more surviving adults.
"Thai
Dei. Can you keep these kids together if we make a run for the alley?" The
Taglians would cease to be a problem if we made it that far. In there one man
could hold off a horde till help arrived.
He
shook his head. "They are too frightened and too badly hurt."
I was
afraid of that. "Then we'll carry them. Can you settle your mother down?
She'll need to help. Sahra. Take the baby. I'll carry the girl. On my back. I
want my hands free. Tell her to hang on tight but to keep her hands out of my
face. If she don't think she can do that let me know now. We'll tie her wrists
together."
Sahra
nodded. She was past her hysteria. She knelt beside Hong Tray, held the old
woman for a moment, then removed her jade bracelet. With a deep sigh and
evident reluctance, she slipped the bracelet onto her own left wrist. Then she
turned to Ky Gota and began trying to calm her.
Thai
Dei talked to the children, translating my my instructions. I realized that
Sahra never spoke at all, not even in a whisper.
The
girl I was going to carry was about six years old. And she did not want to go.
"Tie
her on, then, damn it!" I snapped. I had begun to shake. I did not know
how much longer I would retain full control. "We're running out of
time."
Only
the baby was unhurt. A boy of about four looked like he would not make it. He
for sure would not if I did not get him to One-Eye in a hurry.
Water
splashed and a man shrieked right outside. A body slammed against the door,
which creaked and gave a little. Sahra swatted the girl to calm her, fitted her
onto my back. I asked, "How about your mother?"
Never
mind. The Troll was with us now. She had a two-year-old of indeterminate sex
riding her left hip and the business end of a broken spear clutched in her
right hand. She was ready for Taglians.
Getting
ready actually took less time than it requires to tell it.
Sahra
carried the baby. Thai Dei tied the wounded boy onto his back, kept his sword
in hand. He and I went to the door. I peeked through cracks between the
mutilated timbers. A Taglian soldier lurched past outside. I asked, "You
first? Or me? One to lead, one as rearguard."
"Me.
From this day forward."
What?
"Back!"
I snapped. But he glimpsed the hurtling shape at the same time. He slid to the
right as I moved to the left of the doorway. We were out of the way when the door
blew inward. We jumped at the intruder, recognized him barely in time.
"Uncle
Doj?"
He was
a lucky man. The weight of the children we carried had slowed us just enough to
allow us time to see who had blown in.
"Go,"
I told Thai Dei. We did not need to hold a conference.
Thai
Dei encountered a pair of Taglians immediately. I jumped out and drove one
away. Ky Gota wobbled out behind us. She stuck the tip of her spearhead into
the throat of the nearest Taglian. Then she settled the child more comfortably
on her hip, turned on the other soldier.
A white
crow swooped past, laughing like a troop of monkeys.
The
surviving Taglian was not a foolish young man. He headed for the nearest gang
of his countrymen.
"Go!
Go!" I barked at Thai Dei. "Gota. Sahra. Follow Thai Dei. Uncle!
Where are you? We're gonna leave your ass here."
Uncle
Doj stepped outside as the Taglian pointed us out to his comrades. "Take
the child away, Standardbearer. Ash Wand will be your shield."
He put
on an amazing display though I glimpsed only a few furious moments. That funny
little wide man took on the whole mob of Taglians and killed six of them in
about as many seconds. The rest took off.
Then we
splashed into the alley. We reached safety moments later. In minutes One-Eye
was working on the wounded children, albeit not cheerfully. And I was deploying
some of the Old Crew, with Goblin, for a limited counterattack.
72
That
night was the final watershed. There was never any pretense of friendship with Mogaba
again. I had no doubts myself that he would have come after us if the
"mistaken" attack on the Nyueng Bao had been a success.
Fighting
continued until the water got too deep.
Despite
insistence by One-Eye and others that protecting the Nyueng Bao was not our
mission I did salvage a third of the pilgrims, about six hundred people. The
cost of the attack to Mogaba was bitter. The following morning most of the
remaining Taglians found themselves in positions where they had to commit for
or against Mogaba.
The
Taglians who had been with us from the beginning stuck with us. So did those
who had deserted to join us. More came over from Mogaba's side now but not a
tenth as many as I expected. Tell the truth, I was disappointed. But Mogaba
could make a hell of a speech to the troops when he wanted.
"It's
that old time curse again," Goblin told me. "Even now they're more
afraid of yesterday than they are of now."
And the
water kept rising.
I took
the Nyueng Bao down into our warrens. Uncle Doj was amazed. "We never
suspected."
"Good.
Then neither do our enemies, whose brilliance is eclipsed by yours." I
brought the Old Crew inside, too. We packed people in as comfortably as we
could. The warrens were quite spacious for sixty men. Adding six hundred Nyueng
Bao did cramp things some.
We had
to learn to recognize one another, too. My men had been trained to strike
instantly at any unfamiliar face encountered underground.
I went
back outside after darkness fell. Thai Dei and Uncle Doj dogged me. I assembled
the Taglian officers who had attached themselves to the Old Crew. I told them,
"I believe that we have done all we can here. I believe it is time to
begin evacuating everyone who wants to get out of this hellhole." I did
not know why but was convinced that not much work would be required to evade or
outwit the Shadowlander pickets ashore. "I will send one of my wizards to
cover you."
They
did not buy it. One captain wondered aloud if I intended to drive them into
slavery so I could make it easier to feed my own men.
I had
not thought this through, had not considered possible difficulties. I had
forgotten that many of these men had attached themselves to us only because
they believed that that was their best shot at staying alive. "Never mind.
If you guys want to stay and die with us we'll be happy to have you. I was just
trying to release you from your soldier's oaths so you would have some
chance."
After
dark, too, we let the Nyueng Bao men go back home to look for salvage and survivors
and stores. They did not find much. Mogaba's soldiers had been thorough in
their own search and the water had risen to cover everything.
Mogaba's
men, using makeshift boats and rafts, began attacking Jaicuri occupied
buildings one by one, harvesting stores forced out of hiding by the rising
water.
Mogaba
had drowned his own supplies.
73
When I
was sure nobody would notice I pulled all my brothers inside. We bolted up and
locked up and left Dejagore to its misery. We took the Nyueng Bao survivors
with us. Excepting a few men who kept watch from lookouts accessible only from
inside we withdrew into the deepest, most hidden parts of the warrens, behind
booby traps and secret doors and a web of confusion spells scattered by Goblin
and One-Eye, who left only the occasional flicker of a doppelganger to mark our
passing.
I
started out sharing my quarters with eight guests. After just a few hours I
told Uncle Doj, "Let's you and me take a walk."
With
all those Nyueng Bao down there the air was stuffy and getting riper fast.
Light was provided by candles so scattered you could get lost trekking from one
to the next.
Uncle
Doj was close to being spooked. "I hate it, too," I told him.
"It keeps me riding the edge of a scream. But we'll manage. We lived this
way for years once."
"No
one can live like this. Not for long." "The Company did, though. It
was a terrible place. It was called the Plain of Fear, with good reason. It was
filled with weird creatures and every one of them would kill you in a blink. We
were hunted constantly by armies led by wizards way worse than Shadowspinner.
But we gutted it out. And we came through it. Right here in these tunnels you
have five survivors. who can tell you about it."
The
light was too bad to read him, though that was difficult in broad daylight. I
told him, "I'm going to go crazy if all of you stay with me. I need room.
Nobody can get around without stepping on somebody right now."
"I
understand. But I do not know how to help." "We have empty rooms.
Thai Dei and his baby can have one. You could. Sahra could share one with her
mother."
He
smiled. "You are open and honest but pay too little attention to Nyueng
Bao ways. Many things happened the night you helped Thai Dei rescue this
family." I snorted. "Some rescue." "You saved all who could
be saved." "What a good boy am I."
"You
had neither an obligation nor any cause of honor." In actuality he used
honor and obligation in lieu of Nyueng Bao concepts of similar but not
identical meaning which include overtones of free will participation in a
divine machination. "I did what seemed like the right thing."
"Indeed. Without any appeal or obligation. Which caused your current
predicament."
"I
must be missing something."
"Because
you are not Nyueng Bao. Thai Dei will not leave you now. He is the oldest male.
He owes you six lives. His baby will not leave him. Sahra will not leave
because she must remain under her brother's protection until she marries. And,
as you can see, she may be a while getting through the horror. In this city,
upon this pilgrimage she never wanted to make, she has lost everything that
ever meant anything to her. Except her mother."
"A
man might almost think the gods had it in for her," I said, then hoped
that did not sound too much like a wisecrack.
"One
might. Standardbearer, the only good thing she recalls about that hellnight is
you. She will cling to you the way a desperate swimmer will cling to a rock in
a rushing stream."
It was
time to be careful. A big part of me wished her clinging was more than
metaphorical. "How about Ky Gota and those other kids?"
"The
children can be adopted into the families of their mothers. Gota, surely, can
move." Doj continued muttering under his breath, which was uncharacteristic.
Sounded like something about wanting to move her a couple thousand miles.
"Though she will not take it well."
"Don't
tell me you're less than enchanted with Ky Gota too?"
"No
one is enchanted with that illtempered lizard."
"And
I once thought that you two were married."
He
stopped cold, stunned. "You're mad!"
"I
changed my mind, didn't I?"
"Hong
Tray, old witch, what hast thou wished upon me?"
"What?"
"Talking
to myself, Standardbearer. Engaging in the debate I cannot lose. That woman,
Hong Tray, my mother's cousin, was a witch. She could see into the future
sometimes and if what she saw failed to please her she wanted it changed. And
she had some strange ideas about that."
"I
trust you know what you're talking about."
He did
not get it. "Not entirely. The witch toyed with all our destinies but
never explained. Perhaps she was blind to her own fate."
I let
myself be distracted. "What will your people do now?" "We will
survive, Standardbearer. Like you Soldiers of Darkness, that is what we
do."
"If
you really think you owe me for stumbling in there with Thai Dei, tell me what
that means. Soldiers of Darkness. Stone Soldier. Bone Warrior. What do they
mean?"
"One
might almost accept your protestations."
"Look
at it this way. If I do know what you're talking about you have nothing to lose
by telling me what I already know."
In that
light it was hard to tell but I believe Uncle Doj smiled again. For the second
time in one day. "Clever," he said. And did not explain a thing.
74
Uncle
Doj relieved me of most of my guests. I ended up shar j ing quarters with Thai
Dei and his son To Tan, plus Sahra. :j Sahra helped with the baby and struggled
to put together meals, though the Company kitchen could serve everyone in the
warrens. She needed to stay busy. Thai Dei followed me almost everywhere. Both
he and Sahra were lethargic and uncommunicative and added up to about half a
human being between them.
I began
to worry. They belonged to a hardy people accustomed to surviving cruel
disasters. They should show some signs of recovery.
I
assembled the brains of the outfit: Cletus, Loftus, Longinus, Goblin and
One-Eye, Otto and Hagop. "I got some questions, troops."
"He
got to be here?" Goblin meant Thai Dei.
"He's
all right. Ignore him."
"What
kind of questions?" One-Eye demanded.
"So
far we haven't had any major health problems in the Company. But there's
cholera and typhoid out there, not to mention plenty of the old fashioned
drizzling shits. We all right?"
Goblin
muttered something and passed gas loudly.
"Barbarian,"
One-Eye sneered. "We're all right because we follow Croaker's health rules
like they was religious laws. Only we can't make the rules stick much longer.
We're almost out of fuel. And these Nyueng Bao. They don't like to bother
boiling water and keeping clean and not shitting where they live. We got them
going along right now but it ain't going to last."
"It's
been overcast and nasty for a few days, I hear. Are we collecting any rainwater?"
"Plenty
for us," Loftus told me. "But not enough for us and them, let alone
getting any put back into the cisterns."
"I
was afraid of that. About the fuel, I mean. You guys know any way to fix rice
or beans so you can digest them without cooking them?"
Nobody
knew. Longinus suggested, "Maybe soaking them a long time in water might
help. My mother did that."
"Damn.
I really want us to get through this. But how?"
Goblin
seemed to develop a small secret smile at that, like he had a definite idea. He
exchanged glances with One-Eye.
"You
guys got something?"
"Not
yet," Goblin told me. "There's an experiment we still have to
try."
"Get
on with it."
"After
the meeting. We need you to help."
"Wonderful.
All right. Can anyone tell me what the rest of the city thinks about our
disappearance?"
Hagop
coughed, clearing his throat. He did not say much ordinarily so everybody
paused to listen. "I been doing watches in the lookouts. Sometimes you can
hear talk. I don't think we done our reputation any good. Also, I don't think
we fooled anybody. They don't talk about us much but nobody figures we just cut
out. They think we found some way to dig a hole and fill it up with wine, women
and food and pulled it in after us and we ain't coming back out again till the
rest of them are good and dead."
"Guys,
I tried to get the wine, women and banquets but all
I could
come up with was the hole."
Out of
nowhere, Otto said, "The water's going down."
"What?"
"It
is, Murgen. It's down five feet already."
"Would
flooding the city make that much difference? No? Why's that?"
Goblin
and One-Eye exchanged significant looks.
"What?"
I demanded.
"After
we do our experiment."
"All
right. The rest of you guys. You know the problems. Go see if there's anything
we can do about them."
75
Talk to
me," I told the runt wizards. Goblin said, "We think something was
done to you when you were out there." He jerked his head shoreward.
"What?
Get serious! I ..."
"We
are. You were gone a long time. And you changed. How many disappearing spells
have you had since you got back?"
I gave
it an honest think. "Only one. Maybe. When I was kidnapped. I don't
remember anything about it. I'm sure they drugged me. I was drinking tea with
the Speaker, then I was in that street where you found me. I have no idea how I
got there. I have vague recollections of smelling smoke and going out a door
which put me somewhere that I did not expect to be when I got to the other
side. I vaguely remember thinking something about being in the house of
pain."
"They
tortured you."
"They
did." I still had the nicks and bruises to prove it. I had no idea what I
might have been asked, if anything. I did suspect that Sindhu's pals were
behind my abduction and the attempt on Mogaba.
If so,
their life sure took an unpleasant turn when the Black Company found them.
"We've
been watching you," Goblin said. "And you have been behaving pretty
strange sometimes. What we want to do is put you to sleep and see if we can't
reach the part of you that was there when things happened."
"I
don't get you."
"You
don't have to. You just have to cooperate."
"You're
sure?"
"We're
sure."
He did
not sound sure.
I
awakened on my own pallet. Not refreshed. Someone was wiping my hot face with a
cold, wet cloth. I opened my eyes. In the light of one tiny candle Sahra looked
more lovely than ever. She looked better than imagination. She continued to
wipe my face.
I had
another hangover type headache. What had they done? I ought at least to get the
enjoyment that came before the pain.
To Tan
began to fuss. He slept in a basket of evil smelling rags beneath my writing
table. I reached over and took his hand. He stopped crying, content to have
human contact. He did not cry for his mother much anymore.
I
raised my other hand to take Sahra's. She pushed it back gently. She never
spoke. I never did hear her speak, not even to her own children.
I
looked around. Thai Dei was gone. Anymore it seemed I had a better chance of
shaking my shadow. Thai Dei was there even in the dark.
I
started to sit up. Sahra held me down with two fingers. I was too weak to do
anything. And my head felt like it doubled in size just rising that foot.
Sahra
offered me a hand-carved wooden cup filled with something that smelled so foul
my eyes watered. Nyueng Bao swamp medicine. I drank. It tasted worse than it
smelled.
She
continued to mop my face. I shivered and shook. The pain went away. I began to
relax, to feel both energetic and positive. That was good stuff. Maybe they
made it smell and taste bad so people would not take it all the time.
We
stared at one another a long time, saying nothing but reaching a decision our
conscious minds did not entirely recognize at the moment. Hong Tray drifted
across my thoughts with a smile and an admonition.
This
time I managed a smile when I sat up. Unchallenged. "I have work to
do."
Sahra
shook her head. She fished under the table for To Tan, dug him out of his
basket. He was in desperate need of changing. Sahra tugged my finger.
"I
haven't done this in twenty years." Not since I was a kid myself and had
baby brothers and sisters and cousins to change. "Stop wiggling, you
little turd. You ought to know the drill by now." To Tan looked back at me
with serious big eyes, not understanding my words but catching my tone.
We got
him cleaned up and clothed again, in rags that would have embarrassed a beggar.
I told Sahra, "I'll go kill somebody, get him something better to
wear."
She
laid a hand lightly on my forearm, restraining me. "That was a joke, hon.
You hang around with me, you're going to hear some dark stuff. I don't mean it
literally. I'm going to work now."
I moved
into the passageway slowly, my legs watery. Sahra followed, To Tan straddling
her left hip. We ran into Bucket right away, looking groggy as he headed for
his own pallet. I asked, "You seen Goblin and One-Eye?"
"They
went upstairs with their magic junk. To the big lookout."
"Thanks."
Before
we walked five feet, Bucket called, "Longo tell you the water is coming up
in the catacombs?"
I
sighed and shook my head, listened to the half-hearted rumble of my stomach,
wondered if anybody had found a way to get some food cooked, wound my way
through the maze to the ladders that would take me up to Goblin and One-Eye.
The
light of day might do me good. If I had the strength to climb that far. I had
not seen the sun for a long time.
76
I would
not see the sun for a while longer. Sahra handed To Tan up through the
trapdoor. He was asleep again. I guess you do sleep a lot when you are a baby
starving to death.
It was
daytime but a driving rain was falling. Hagop sat astride a chair turned
backwards, forearms on the chair's back, staring into the rain morosely.
"How long has this been going on?" I asked.
"Day
or three."
"We
getting any fresh water out of it?"
"About
as much as we can being as we're hiding out."
"What're
those two doing?" Goblin and One-Eye were on the floor in the middle of
the room, crosslegged, farthest from the moisture blowing inside. They did not
look up.
"Wizard
stuff. Don't bother them. They'll bite your leg off."
One-Eye
grumbled, "And somebody's gonna lose a set of ears if he don't stop
yakking."
Hagop
and I each spent one of our diminishing supply of single finger salutes.
One-Eye did not acknowledge the accolade.
The
lookout had a window facing each direction. I went to the biggest.
This
rain was not what we called a gullywasher back home but it was strong and
steady. I could barely sense the vague loom of the surrounding hills. Nearer at
hand I could make out the surface of the water. It was down despite the rain.
It was a grey that spoke of sickness.
I saw a
Jaicuri raft out there, so loaded with people that it was awash. Men using
short boards as paddles labored carefully to drive it toward shore.
I made
the rounds of the other windows, studied the city. I was pleased to see our
Taglians at their posts the way they had been taught.
"They've
been doing it by the numbers," Hagop agreed. "And that gets them left
alone."
"By
Mogaba?"
"By
everybody. The fighting is almost constant."
The
streets and alleys were now canals. I saw bodies floating everywhere. The
stench was overwhelming. The water level, though, was lower than I had
expected. I could see the citadel from the east window. There were Nar up top
there, ignoring the weather. They moved around the parapet, studying our part
of town.
Hagop
noticed me watching them. "They're worried about us. They think we might
come sort them out sometime."
"Sure
we will."
"They're
superstitious about guys like Goblin and One-Eye."
"Which
shows you how dangerous a little ignorance can be."
"I
heard that," One-Eye grumbled. He and Goblin could have been playing some
obscure dice game for all I could tell. I liked it better when they conjured
big lights that went around smashing things and burning them up. Destruction I
can understand.
Sahra
seemed tired of lugging To Tan so I took him. She offered a grateful smile. It
lit up the lookout.
One-Eye
and Goblin paused to exchange glances amongst themselves and with Hagop.
"What
are you guys doing?" I demanded.
"We
found out we were right."
"Yeah?
That might be a first. You were right about what?"
"About
your head having been tampered with."
I
shuddered to a sudden chill. That is not something anyone welcomes. "Who
did it? How?"
"How
we haven't been able to figure out for sure. It might have been managed several
ways. Who and what are more interesting, anyway."
"So
give."
"Who
was Lady. And what was knowledge of the fact that she is out there."
"Excuse
me?"
"It's
a little hard to tell from here, especially when we got tourists and their
girlfriends traipsing through the workplace, but it looks like Lady and the
Taglians are in charge out there. Their camp is on the other side of the hills,
up the north road. The southerners we see patrolling are auxiliaries who report
back to Lady."
"Run
through that again."
Goblin
did so.
I said,
"You guys go ahead. I'm just going to sit over here in the corner and
think."
77
Uncle
Doj and Thai Dei were back from wherever they had gone. They scowled at Sahra
and me when we returned but neither said a word. Hong Tray still had her hold
on the Kys. Thai Dei took his son. The little guy brightened immediately.
Uncle
Doj told me, "My people are not mushrooms, Standardbearer. They cannot
endure this much longer. You Stone Soldiers have been generous to a fault and
have given no provocation but even so there will be trouble eventually. A
wounded animal will strike out at even the most loving master."
"We'll
be out of here sooner than I planned." I was not in a good mood. I wanted
to drag Lady across my lap and paddle her. "I've already given orders to
start the process."
"You
sound angry."
"I
am angry." Lady used me in a political game with Mogaba with never a
thought for the Company's welfare. She was no more real Company than he was.
Longo
leaned in the doorway. "You get the word about the catacombs flooding,
Murgen?"
"Bucket
told me. How soon is it going to be a problem?" "Four or five days.
Maybe more. Unless the leak gets a lot worse.
"We'll
be gone. Your brothers and One-Eye are up in the big lookout. Go find out
what's up."
Longo
shrugged and went, grumbling about the climb.
I
asked, "Who speaks for the Nyueng Bao now?"
"We
have not yet chosen," Uncle Doj replied.
"Could
you? Quickly? A Taglian general name of Lanore Bonharj-the guy who's in charge
of the freed slaves and friendly Taglians and Jaicuri right now-is going to
come by. We'll need somebody Nyueng Bao to join us in planning our
evacuation." He started to say something. I rolled on. "It seems that
the Shadowmaster isn't a problem anymore, only nobody bothered to tell us. Our
own so-called friends have been jobbing us for political reasons. We could
leave any time I don't know for how long now."
I put
all the blame for our ignorance on Goblin and One-Eye. You can blame a wizard
for anything and people will believe you.
Sahra
tried to make a meal from what we had. I touched her hand as she passed. She
smiled. I told her, "This should be the last time we'll need to do
this."
I
hoped.
I was
wrong.
Everything
takes time.
Lanore
Bonharj followed me down into the warrens. He was both amazed and appalled. He
was high-caste Gunni. It was bad up top but this squalor down below was beyond
his imagination. We talked. Uncle Doj spoke for the Nyueng Bao. Bargains were
struck, agreements agreed, plans quickly laid. Preparations began in earnest.
78
In the
dark of night, in the rain, the Black Company stole forth, crossed a rickety
makeshift bridge to stairs to the battlements, joined the Taglians of the al-Khul
company. With Goblin at the point we sneaked along the wall, seized the North
Gate and barbican from the Nar and their Taglians. Goblin's sleep spell made
that easy. Nobody got hurt. In our gang.
Before
the last body splashed into the water outside Goblin and I and the Company
cadre headed back to grab the West Gate and its barbican.
With
the gates in our hands we could proceed unobserved by Mogaba's men.
Loftus
and his brothers got to work inside the central of the three towers between the
gates. While the wall itself was stone with a rubble fill the towers were not
solid. They had to be hollow to allow crossbowmen inside to pepper the wall
faces with missiles. The boys got to work opening a hole to the outside from
the floor nearest the present water level.
The
Nyueng Bao brought our remaining food stores to the surface. The women would
use the last of the Taglians' fuel to cook for everyone. I wanted everybody to
build strength. A lot of us were little more than stick figures now.
When
the sun rose next morning the Nar atop the citadel saw nothing they had not
seen the day before, except less rain. They got no signals from the north or
west barbicans but did not seem concerned.
"Aren't
many crows around anymore," Goblin noted as daylight began to fade.
"Maybe
we ate them all."
Night
returned. Everybody went back to work. The hammering and pounding and the
collapse of masonry into water had to be audible all over town but nobody could
see what we were doing and nothing was evident when the sun rose except that
several derelict buildings were missing.
The
lake continued its slow fall. The weather continued damp.
The
rafts the carpenters were building floated outside, against the wall.
Everything capable of offering flotation went into their construction. Even the
occasional empty beer barrel.
That
afternoon we acquired some useful lumber when Mogaba sent three rafts to the
North Gate to find out why his signals were not being answered.
We
could not keep the ambush from being seen from the citadel. Mogaba wasted no
more men or materials.
Loftus
and his brothers said the best raft would be built long and thin so more people
could paddle against less front-end water resistance. Working in three feet of
water the three brothers and a few skilled Taglians assembled one raft after
another, each able to carry ten or more adults. By using everything they could
find they built forty-one craft. They guessed that fleet could carry seven
hundred people, more than five hundred of whom could be put ashore while the
rest brought the rafts back, reloaded them and got under way again before dawn.
So
about twelve hundred could get away overnight. Enough to establish a modestly
solid beachhead on what we did not know for certain would be a friendly shore.
Problem.
The numbers we needed to move undetected were greater than I had guessed. I had
my forty Old Crew, more than six hundred Nyueng Bao, and a whole lot more
Taglians, freed slaves and Jaicuri volunteers than I had thought.
Lanore
Bonharj wanted to move nearly a thousand men and dependents. There was no way
to get everyone out in one night.
"Here's
what you do," One-Eye said. "You only take one load across the first
night. Draw lots for the spots. That way we don't get people climbing over each
other and nobody getting out in the panic. Figure the draw so a representative
percentage goes from each group. Then nobody bitches. Dump the five hundred and
some with orders to build a camp. Have the rafts come back and tie up, then
finish up with two trips next night."
"The
man is a genius," I said. "You or Goblin will have to go, just in
case."
"Shouldn't
be necessary."
"Why
not?"
"Things
aren't that dangerous anymore."
"Then
we won't need to dig in. We can send the Nyueng Bao and dependents out
first."
"That
will go down great."
"Women
and children and old people? That will work. I'll bet you. Include the
Taglians' dependents. Hold up on the Jaicuri, though, or we'll have the whole
damned city lining up. We figure how many that all is, then draw lots for the
rest of the positions."
It
worked out that thirty Taglians, five Black Company guys and fifteen Nyueng Bao
warriors could be sent with the first group. We would have fifty swords on the
beach.
Uncle
Doj grumbled about the scheme because for one night he would not be able to
keep his whole tribe together. "Clever, Soldier of Darkness." We were
back to that? "You hold us warriors hostage."
"You
want to go, go. There are more of you than there are of us. Take the
rafts."
He
scowled, his hand called.
"It's
one night, Unc. And fifteen warriors will go with them. They'll be drawn by lot
so one of them might even be you."
One-Eye
and Goblin did not want to leave. "I'm not going over tonight,"
One-Eye told me.
"Me
too neither," Goblin insisted.
They
had that weasel look they get when they are dealing off the bottom of the deck.
"Why not?" They looked like they could use a straight man.
"It
ain't safe out there," One-Eye told me, after Goblin failed to convince me
of his altruistic desire to protect the world by blunting Mogaba's wickedness.
"That bitch from Juniper. Lisa Daele Bowalk. She's laying for us out
there."
"Who?"
I heard no bells ringing.
"Lisa
Bowalk. From Juniper. Nasty little bitch. Ran with Matron Shed. The corpse
runner. Shifter took her as his apprentice after the Company went on the run.
She was there when we skragged Shifter. The Old Man let her get away. Well,
she's out there, prowling, waiting for a chance to get even. She's already
tried a couple times."
"And
you never bothered to tell me?" A healthy dose of skepticism is in order
any time One-Eye waxes passionate on any subject.
"Wasn't
no problem till now."
Why
argue? The truth seemed evident. Those two had plunder stashed and did not want
to leave it unguarded. Nor did either want the other left with it alone. I told
them, "Take your chances with the rest of us."
Bonharj
and Uncle Doj, Goblin and One-Eye all glowered at me. I told them, "I
shouldn't have to take a turn."
One-Eye
chuckled. "Maybe not. But you said we all had to take our chances."
I had
not yet drawn. Trouble was, the outcome was not in doubt. There was only one
stone left in the jar. Five black pebbles had been allocated to the Company and
only four had been drawn.
I would
go to the mainland with the first wave.
Why did
my bitty buddies look so smug? "Pick your rock and pack your shit,"
Goblin said. They would not have rigged the draw, would they? Nah. Not those
two. Paragons of virtue, they were.
"Anybody
want to buy this?" I held up the expected black pebble.
"Stuff
it, Kid," One-Eye said. "We'll manage without you. Again. What could
go wrong in one day, anyway?"
"With
you guys in charge?" It did not seem right, me going ashore before the
last Black Company brother was out of the city.
"Just
get your stuff together and go," Goblin snapped again. "It'll be dark
in an hour."
It was
still drizzling. Darkness would come early, though not early enough to complete
two crossings and get the rafts back unseen. Damn it.
Sahra
was burdened down with odds and ends and six pounds of rice and beans. I
carried a pack containing a Nyueng Bao tent, blankets, various clutter useful
in the field, plus I had To Tan perched on my hip. That kid was the least
troublesome baby I ever saw.
Thai
Dei had not drawn a black stone.
I meant
to enjoy his absence.
We
climbed out of the warren, descended steps, crossed to the wall, climbed up,
walked the battlements, descended inside the middle tower. And that was about
as much exercise as I wanted.
On my
raft we were all Nyueng Bao except me and Red Rudy. The Nyueng Bao were patient
about waiting their turns. The guys in the tower, operating by feeble
lamplight, were patient too. Morale was good.
"Careful,"
Clete said as I stepped aboard. I accepted children as he started handing them
across. "I picked you a good one, boss, but it will lean over if you don't
keep the weight balanced. Ma'am." He helped Sahra. She acknowledged his
courtesy with a dazzling smile.
"Thanks,
Clete. See you tomorrow night."
"Right.
Round up some cattle and dancing girls."
"I'll
check around."
"Kneel
down. You got to keep the center of gravity low so the damned thing don't
tip."
I
glanced around. We were ready to go.
Six
Nyueng Bao men were aboard. They would paddle over. Five would bring the raft
back. Other than them, Rudy and I and one gimp Nyueng Bao about fifty were the
only adult males aboard. There were fifteen or sixteen kids and half as many
women. We were crowded but Nyueng Bao make a light load. I volunteered to help
paddle but the men on the job lost their capacity to understand Taglian.
Rudy
said, "If they want to be dicks and bust their nuts, no sweat off our
asses."
"You're
right. But keep it down. We're doing a sneak here."
It
turned out the Nyueng Bao were skilled boatmen. Which should have been no
surprise considering their origins.
They
remained as quiet as falling feathers. And made rapid headway. The rafts immediately
ahead had Taglian paddlers who not only made a lot of noise, they were slow.
With just a whispered word my paddlers swung right and began passing.
It was
not much of a sneak, overall. Paddles splashed. People bumped, grunted, banged
around and occasionally managed to collide with other rafts. But those were
noises that came off the water every night and tonight the drizzle was
deadening some of the racket. And, of course, we were headed straight away from
the city. The light inside the opened tower served as a navigational beacon.
My
paddle men maybe did not keep the best watch on the light. We drifted way off
line and lost it altogether.
Somebody
hissed.
Paddles
stopped dipping. Even the murmur of the little ones stilled as mothers placed
hands over their mouths or pulled lips to teats.
I heard
nothing.
We
waited.
Sahra
rested her hand lightly upon my arm, sharing reassurance.
Then I
heard the clumsy paddling. Somebody was farther off course than we were....
Only this raft was headed the other way.
It was
too early for that.
The
sounds grew louder.
The
other raft came abreast, so close that it seemed they had to see us despite the
darkness and rain.
A voice
said something softly, just a few words edged with anger. In the language of
Gea-Xle. I had picked up maybe twenty words, none of which I recognized now.
I did
not need to know words. I knew the voice.
That
was Mogaba.
He had
not been spotted leaving during the day. From the north and west barbicans it
was possible to watch most of the lake surface.
Which
meant that he had been away at least since the previous night. Which, in turn,
would explain why there had been no response to our capture of the barbicans.
What
business could Mogaba possibly have over there?
The Nar
paddled on into darkness. We resumed our journey. I remained lost in thought
till the raft ran aground and tossed me forward.
Sahra
and I took up To Tan and our burdens and marched ashore. The little guy was
sleeping like his aunt's arms were a palace bed.
In
moments I discovered that my companions, although utterly ignorant of the
Taglian language, expected me to be in charge on this side, too. Uncle Doj's
idea, no doubt, and in effect only till he arrived.
"Rudy.
Take charge of getting camp set." We had swung back into the general
course of the fleet and had made landfall where others joined us in savoring
the miracle of life outside Dejagore's walls.
Hanging
around in a rainstorm in the middle of the night did not seem much of an
improvement to me.
"Let's
go, people. We can't just stand here. Start putting up those shelters." We
had the tents the Nyueng Bao had carried on pilgrimage. We had blankets,
wrapped inside those same tents so they would stay dry. "Somebody collect
some brush and get some fires going." Maybe easier said than done in this
weather. "Bubbado. Take some men and set a perimeter. You. Joro? That your
name, sergeant?" I was talking to one of the Taglian soldiers. "Get
patrols out. Come on! Come on! We don't know that there aren't people over here
who want to kill us." But it gets hard to care when you are cold and wet
and tired.
I was
tired to the point of collapse but I made myself an example. Sahra followed and
helped. While I barked at people we took turns caring for the baby. I had
visions of some major historical asskicker like Khrombak the Terrible ordering
his hordes about while he had a smelly baby tucked into the crook of his arm.
To Tan
was a good kid but he always needed changing.
Soon
everyone was bustling industriously. Shelters went up. Brush got cut. Small
fires took life and spawned others until there were enough to heat water to
cook rice. The water we gathered using some tents to collect rain into the
pots. It was going to be difficult for any of us to get wetter than we were
already.
We even
sent several small loads of brush over to the city on returning rafts. Our
friends might get to do a little cooking, too.
79
We had
known so much misery for so long that night became just another sad chore. And
in time there was poor shelter, bad food, and feeble warmth for all. But by
then it was getting light and the rain was just an occasional sprinkle. Sahra
and To Tan and I crept into our tent and bundled up. For a while I was almost
happy.
That To
Tan was remarkable. He was almost as quiet as Sahra most of the time, though he
could get a good fuss going when he wanted. He was content to sleep right then.
For the first time in a week his tummy was full.
Mine,
too.
I got
four hours of perfectly wonderful sleep before disaster interrupted.
First
it took the shape of Ky Gota. I had not seen Sahra's mother since Uncle Doj
cajoled her out of my quarters. I had not missed her, either.
Because
I was asleep I did not witness the part where she ripped open the end of the
tent. When I awoke she was spitting and howling in a mix of Nyueng Bao and
really bad Taglian. Sahra was sitting up already, her mouth open and tears
starting.
To Tan
began to cry.
Ky Gota
was not immune to baby tears. The soul of a granny did lurk behind all the ill
temper. Way behind. She said something to the toddler. Gently!
Rudy
hurried up. "You want I should throw this one back in the lake,
Murgen?" "What?"
"She
crawled out of the water a while ago. Claimed somebody tried to murder her.
Supposedly pushed her off the raft she was riding. Looks to me like maybe she
asked for it."
"She
probably did." Sahra looked at me in surprise. Despite her tears.
"But I got to be nice. She's almost family." "Man," Rudy
said. He walked off shaking his head. Sahra began gesturing exasperatedly at
her mother. To Tan stared at his granny, sucked his thumb. I caught a whiff.
"Go to Nana," I whispered. "Show her how good you can
walk." He did not understand me but she did and held her arms out.
Near as
I could tell To Tan was the only person in the world who cared for Ky Gota. He
toddled and his granny forgot all about being wet and cold and cranky.
Sahra
looked at me hard. I shrugged, grinned, mouthed, "He needs changing
again."
Rudy
found me staring at the city. Fresh smoke hung over our part of town.
"Bubbado just ambushed a patrol, Murgen."
"Shit.
When they don't report. .."
"He
said they knew we were here. They were sneaking up. That Swan character is with
them."
"One-Eye
was right, then. Anybody get hurt?"
"Not
yet."
"Good.
Good. Did they get a look at the camp?" The Nyueng Bao had done a good job
of camouflage, considering. You could tell where the camp was but not its
extent.
"I
think they just saw the smoke. They were real surprised to get jumped according
to Bubba-do."
"They
see him?"
"Yes."
"Unfortunate.
Maybe they didn't recognize him." I shrugged. "Some things can't be
helped. I'll deal with them. Hang on." I stomped over to Sahra and her
mother. "Hush!" I snapped when the old woman opened her mouth to
start. "We have trouble. Who can speak for the Nyueng Bao?" I did not
know who else to ask. These strange people did what I said when I told them, if
that improved our situation, but they did not talk.
The old
woman put the baby down and rose. She squinted. Her eyesight was not good.
"Tarn Dak!" she barked.
A frail
ancient turned. Despite his age he was carrying a huge bundle of brushwood. Ky
Gota beckoned imperiously. The oldster headed our way at a high-speed shuffle.
I went
to meet him. "Greetings, father. I am the one who dealt with the
Speaker." I spoke both loudly and slowly.
"I'm
not deaf yet, boy," he replied in Taglian better than mine. "And I
know who you are."
"Good.
Then I'll get to the point. The soldiers over here have found us. We don't know
what their attitude toward your people might be. If they're in a bad temper I
can't help much. Your warriors have scouted. Can you disappear?"
He looked
at me for a dozen seconds. I looked back. Sahra came to stand beside me. Behind
us, To Tan giggled as he played with his grandmother. The old man shifted his
look to Sahra. For a moment he seemed to be staring into yesterday. He
shivered. His expression grew more inscrutable. "We can."
"Good.
Do it while I'm with them." I jerked a thumb uphill. "I'll get word
to Doj. He'll find you."
Tarn
Dak continued to stare cooly. Not inimically at all, just without
comprehension. I was not behaving like a proper foreigner.
"Good
luck." I returned to Rudy. "Here's the deal. The Nyueng Bao need to
take a powder. I'll go with Swan. I'll stall around when I get to his camp. You
see that the Nyueng Bao get moved out, then make this mess look like we were
setting up for the guys coming over tonight."
The old
man overheard every word.
I
continued, "As far as anybody around here goes, these people never
existed."
"But.
. ."
"Do
it. And let them have most of the food. We can sponge off Lady's gang." I
hoped.
Rudy
looked at Sahra. Everybody seemed to think that she was the key. He shrugged.
"You're the boss. I guess I don't need to understand. How are you going to
explain her?"
"I
don't have to." I headed toward where Swan's patrol was surrounded.
Sahra
came right along after pausing to grab up To Tan.
"Stay
here," I told her. She looked at me blankly, smitten by sudden deafness. I
took a few steps. She matched them. "You need to stay with your own
people."
A
little smile teased her lips. She shook her head.
Hong
Tray was not the only witch in this family.
"Ky
Gota . . ."
Boom!
"You!
Soldier of Darkness! You her ruin, now is not good enough for you? Cruel witch
was my mother but . . ." She became incomprehensible but not the least bit
quiet. I checked Tarn Dak. He remained inscrutable but I would have bet my shot
at heaven he wanted to laugh.
"Fuck
this. Rudy! Find out what belongs to Sahra and see that it stays in our tent.
Come on, woman."
80
"Holy
shit," Swan murmured when I stepped out where he could see me. "No
wonder you went back."
"Hands
off, pretty boy. Ay, Nyueng Bao! If you are out there go see Tam Dak. It's
important. Taglians. See Rudy from the Company." I turned back to Swan.
"There. We're down to a few snipers. Just in case."
He
stopped staring at Sahra. "Sorry. You really stumbled into the sweet shit,
didn't you?" He did have the courtesy to make his remarks in Forsberger.
"Yeah.
I did. What's going on? I wake up the other day, after my wizards did an
experiment on me, and I find out that somebody has been inside my head, messing
with my memories. I find out I'm back over there in hell's kitchen hunting rats
and fighting cannibals when all the time my so-called friends are sitting
around out here not even letting me know the Shadowmaster is dead."
Swan
gave me a dumb look. "But. . . You knew that, Murgen. You was over here
when we killed the bastard. You was here for a week after that."
"Killed
him?"
It
began to dawn. "You didn't insist on going back? She said you. . . ."
"No.
I didn't. When I found myself headed that way I thought I was escaping from
Shadowspinner. I really believed that I hadn't gotten to you people. I
think." It got more confused as I tried to figure it out.
Somebody
called out something in Nyueng Bao. My troops had not followed orders. Someone
else, in Taglian, called, "Can you come up here please, Mr. Murgen?"
I told
Swan, "I don't know what's up. You better stand fast. These guys are real
touchy."
"I
got nothing else to do with my life."
"I
mean it. They're paranoid in a big way. If you had spent the last several
months in there you'd understand," I clambered up a steep slope to where
one Taglian knelt in some scraggly brush with a Nyueng Bao about fifteen years
old.
The boy
pointed, eager to be the first to deliver bad news.
Fresh
smoke rose from Dejagore. From, near as I could tell, the north barbican. It
looked like there was fighting there.
A mauve
flash told me One-Eye or Goblin was involved.
Mogaba
must be trying to recover the barbican.
I spied
flickers around the west gate, too.
"Damned
Mogaba. Thanks, guys. Nothing we can do about it, though." I hoped One-Eye
and Goblin carved Mogaba a new poop chute. "Get on back to camp, will you?
There's stuff that's got to get done."
Lady
was gone. Blade was in charge and just sitting around collecting refugees from
the city, keeping them from reporting back with news about Shadowspinner. He
admitted that. "That's what she wants done." He seemed indifferent to
Sahra, unlike every other man in camp.
"She's
lucky she's not here," I grumbled. "I'd turn her over my knee."
Since
there was nothing else going on I sat around with him and Swan and Mather until
it started to get dark. Somebody found a puppy for To Tan to play with. When it
got late I said, "We'd better get back to our people. They'll be getting
nervous."
"No
can do, buddy," Mather told me.
Blade
agreed. "She said no exceptions."
The
warmth went out of the air. I gave each one what I thought of as the Nyueng Bao
look. Swan and Mather averted their eyes. Blade took it but with a twitch.
Sahra
seemed untroubled. I suppose, after Dejagore, it was hard to imagine a turn for
the worse. She even smiled.
"I
assume the prison pen is where I left it?" I remembered that part of my
previous visit perfectly.
"We
will keep you more comfortably," Blade promised.
Mather
volunteered, "I'll show you where to bunk."
We were
far enough away not to overhear, Swan thought. He told Blade, "You look at
her good? That's one spooky woman."
I
glanced at Sahra. I assumed she heard, too, but her expression told me nothing.
If
Blade answered Swan he spoke more softly.
I
continued to study Sahra, wondering what Swan had seen.
81
The
tent was decent. It must have belonged to a middle-grade Shadowlander officer.
We were not unhonored guests. And the tent came with a man assigned to make us
comfortable and bring us our supper. Blade's troops were foraging successfully,
it seemed. I ate better than I had for a long time.
"What
I want more than anything in the world," I told our man, whose name I
never learned, "is a bath." Sahra hit him with a smile guaranteed to
melt armor plate. She was enthusiastic about that idea. "I'm so filthy my
fleas have lice," I said.
Must
have been a real ration of guilt going around at high levels. An hour later
several soldiers showed up humping a looted stone horse trough. With them came
guys lugging buckets of hot water. I told Sahra, "We must of died and come
back as princes."
Our
tent was big enough to contain the trough and water with room left over.
Swan
turned up. "What do you think of that, eh?"
"If
I didn't have friends over there fighting and dying I'd ask for a life
sentence."
"Take
it easy, Murgen. It'll all work out."
"I
know that, Swan. I know that. But some of us aren't going to be happy how it
does." "Yeah, well. Good night."
It was.
Beginning with the bath Sahra made it clear her definition of our relationship
was exactly what others feared or suspected. She astounded me with her ability
to communicate without spoken words, amazed me that in the midst of such
unrelenting hell a flower of such beauty could bloom and defy the night.
I slept
longer and better than I had for months. Maybe some part of me just resigned
and let go.
Water
in the face wakened me.
"What?"
I cracked an eyelid. And popped upright. Sahra sat up as I did. "To Tan?
What're you doing, kiddo?" The little guy was leaning over the edge of the
horse trough, spanking the water. He looked at me and grinned, said something
in Nyueng Bao baby talk that sounded like "Dada."
"What's
going on?"
Sahra
shrugged. To Tan said "Dada" again and headed out of the tent.
Things
were happening outside. I grabbed my clothes, climbed in, stuck my head
outside. "Holy shit! Where the freak did you guys come from?" Thai
Dei and Uncle Doj were seated outside. Their swords lay across their laps.
Sheathed, thankfully. Gangs of Taglians were coming by to check them out. I
guessed they had not been there long nor had they asked permission to enter
camp and assume their posts.
Swan
and Mather appeared.
Uncle
Doj told me, "Only one group made it out again last night. The black men
attacked. Many men were injured. Numerous rafts were damaged. But their
soldiers did not want to fight and many asked to join Bonharj."
"Who
the hell are these guys?" Swan demanded. "How did they get
here?"
"The
rest of the family. I expect they sneaked. They're good at that. Obviously,
your perimeter ain't what it should be."
Blade
shouted something from the distance. "Crap," Swan grumbled. "Now
what?" He jogged away.
Mather
considered Thai Dei and Uncle Doj briefly, shrugged, followed Swan. Uncle Doj
said something to Sahra. She nodded. I guess he wanted to know if she was all
right.
To Tan
climbed around on his father.
Doj
told me, "You did well, and more than you were obliged, Standardbearer.
Our people are safely away and these men know nothing about them."
"Yeah?
Good. What about mine?"
"They
would not come out. The wizards want to pursue their vendetta with Mogaba. They
might come tonight."
82
They
did not come that night. Nor did they come the next though they sent a lot of
Taglians and Jaicuri out in place of the Company.
Two
mornings later Mather finally let me in on what the excitement had been about
when Blade interrupted our discussion over Uncle Doj and Thai Dei. He told me,
"Croaker will be here in an hour or two, Murgen. You might put in a good
word."
"What?"
It was
not an hour and it was not just the Old Man. Croaker was travelling with the
Prahbrindrah Drah himself. He looked like he had seen a lot of hard road. I
moved toward him in fits and starts, unsure where we stood after all this time.
He
jumped down, said, "It is me. I'm real."
"But
I saw you die."
"No.
You saw me get hit. I was still breathing when you cut out."
"Yeah?
The shape you was in, there wasn't no way . . ." "Shouldn't have
been, either. It's a long story. We can chew on it over a few beers
sometime." He waved. A soldier trotted up. Croaker grabbed his spear,
which was almost long enough to be a pike, shoved it at me. "Here. You
left this when you ran off to play Widowmaker."
I did
not believe it. Not at first. It was the lance for the standard.
"You
really need to hug it?"
"It's
really it! I was almost sure it was lost." Despite what I had told Mogaba.
"You got no idea how guilty I felt. Although I did think I saw it that one
time. . . . It's really you?" I looked at him closely. Having seen what
illusions One-Eye and Goblin could conjure I was not quite ready to accept the
evidence of my own eyes.
"It's
me. Really. Alive and in a mood to kick some ass. But that's not what I've got
on my mind right now. Where's Lady?"
Poor
boy. Blade gave him the bad news. His paramour had left more than a week ago,
headed north. They missed each other on the road.
Swan
and Mather were impressed by the presence of the Prince, their supposed
boss. Why was he out running around,
anyway? I noticed Croaker had a hard stare for Sindhu, who had stayed behind
when Lady left.
The Old
Man snapped, "Quit making love to that damned thing, Murgen. I need to
catch up. I'm way out of touch. Will somebody take this damned
butt-cruncher?"
A
soldier grabbed his mount's reins.
"Let's
get out of the sun."
"I
want to hear your story," I said. "While it's fresh."
"Going
to put it into the Annals? You been keeping them up?"
"I
tried. Only I had to leave them in the city." I did not like that, either.
One-Eye could promise the moon about taking care of them but would he deliver?
"I'll
look forward to reading the Book of Murgen. If it's any good you've got the job
for life."
Swan
said something about Lady planning to write a book of her own when she got
time. Croaker flung a stone at a crow. It was the first of those birds I had
spotted since the albino in the night. Maybe he brought it with him. I sketched
some of what had been happening in Dejagore.
"Guess
it hasn't been fun for anybody. Seems Mogaba is the main problem. Better get
right after him. How many people are still over there?"
"My
guess is him and the Nar have a thousand to fifteen hundred men. I don't know
how many people I have. Some come out every night but since I got elected
prisoner here I can't keep track. Goblin and One-Eye and most of the Company
are still over there." I hoped Uncle Doj and Thai Dei were using this
distraction to get To Tan and Sahra and themselves on the road.
"Why
would they stay?"
"They
don't want to leave. They say they want to wait till Lady gets all her powers
back. They say something is out here waiting for them."
"Powers
back?"
"It's
happening," Blade said.
"Hunh.
So what are they afraid of, Murgen?"
"Shapeshifter's
apprentice. That bitch from Juniper. She almost got One-Eye once already once.
. . ." How come I believed the little rat now but had not when he had told
me?
I had a
momentary vision of One-Eye puffing through the night with fanged death closing
in. It was as solid as actual memory.
"I
remember her. She was a real piece of work. Marron Shed should have taken care
of her when he had the chance."
"Evidently
she wants to get even with us for doing Shifter. She may be locked into the
forvalaka shape, too. Which would really piss anybody off, I guess. But if you
was to ask my personal opinion I think she's only an excuse. They want to stay
where they are because otherwise they might have to leave something
behind."
"Like
what?"
I
shrugged. "They're Goblin and One-Eye. They've had months to pilfer and
profiteer."
"Tell
me about Mogaba."
Now we
got down to the grim stuff.
Before
the discussion ended even nasty Sindhu condemned the Nar.
"I'll
put an end to that. You want to take a message to Mogaba?"
I
looked over my shoulder. He could not be asking the guy behind me. There was
nobody there. "You shitting me? Not unless it's an order. And maybe not
then. Mogaba wants my head. Not to mention my heart and liver for breakfast.
Crazy as he is right now he might go after me with you standing right behind
me."
"I'll
get somebody else."
"Good
idea."
"I'll
go," Swan volunteered. Then him and Mather got into an argument about
that. Evidently Swan had something to prove to himself and Cordy did not
believe he needed to bother.
83
My
status in camp changed sharply. Suddenly I never was a prisoner, never had been
unfree to do whatever served the common good.
Only
problem was, my tent was cold. All I had left of Sahra and the Nyueng Bao was
the jade amulet Sahra had taken from Hong Tray before we had carried the
children out of the killing place.
"You
done yet?" Croaker demanded, finding me seated in front of my tent,
working on the standard.
I showed
him what I was doing. "Good enough?"
"Perfect.
You ready?"
"Ready
as I'll ever get." I touched the jade amulet.
"She
pretty special?"
"Very
special."
"I
want to hear all about her people."
"Someday."
We
walked through the hills and down to the shore. A sizable boat was out on the
lake already. Blade's soldiers had transported it overland after having failed
to work it along the canal from the nearest river to the lake. Croaker and I
took up position on a prominent hummock. I displayed the standard. They would
be able to see that from the city even if they did not recognize me and the Old
Man.
Mogaba
wanted to know where the standard was? He could see for himself, now.
While
the boat crossed over and returned Croaker and I speculated as to what made
both Mogaba and Lady want to be in charge so badly.
"Looks
like Swan is getting results. Can you see what's going on?"
"Looks
like somebody black getting into the boat."
That
somebody turned out to be Sindawe. I told the Old Man, "This guy was
always as right with us as having Mogaba for a boss would allow. Ochiba and Isi
and some of the others weren't too bad, either. But they wouldn't disobey
orders."
Sindawe
stepped ashore. Croaker saluted him. He responded uncertainly, looked to me for
a clue. I shrugged. He was on his own. I had no idea where this was headed.
Sindawe
made sure he was face to face with the real Captain. Once he was satisfied, he
suggested, "Let us step out of sight and talk."
The Old
Man made a small gesture that told me I should let them talk in complete
privacy. They walked around behind the hummock and sat on a rock. They talked
for a long time, voices never rising. Sindawe finally rose and walked back to
the boat like a man borne down by an incredibly heavy burden.
"What's
the story?" I asked Croaker. "He looks like he suddenly added twenty
years on top of the wear and tear of the siege."
"Years
of the heart, Murgen. Feeling morally compelled to betray somebody who has been
your best friend since childhood will do that to you."
"What?"
He
would say nothing more. "We're going over there. I'm going to meet Mogaba
nose to nose."
I
thought of a pile of arguments against. I did not bother. He would not listen.
"Not me." I shuddered. My spine was shivering to that chill they say
happens when somebody walks over your grave.
Croaker
looked at me hard. I drove the butt of the standard into the earth, vigorously,
meaning, "Here I stand." He grunted, turned and went down to the
boat. The creature Sindhu snaked out of nowhere and joined the party. I
wondered how much of Sindawe's and Croaker's conversation he had overheard. Not
a word, probably. The Old Man would have used the Jewel Cities dialect.
Once
the boat was well out onto the water I sat down beside the standard, clung to
the pole and tried to figure out what made it impossible for me to go back over
there.
84
I had
suffered no big seizures for a while. I was not on guard anymore. This one
began insidiously, like just losing focus and drifting into a lazy daydream. I
stared at Dejagore but no longer really saw it, thought of the women who had
entered my life and the ancient one who had left it. Already I missed Sahra and
so-serious To Tan.
A white
crow landed on the crossbar of the standard, cawed down at me. I paid no
attention.
I stood
at the edge of a shimmering wheatfield. A twisted, broken black stump rose
thirty yards from me, in the field's center. Bickering crows surrounded it. The
fairy towers of Overlook gleamed in the distance, days' walk away. I recognized
them for what they were without understanding how I could know.
Suddenly
the crows rose up and wheeled around, flew that direction in an uncrowlike
flock. One white crow stayed behind, circling.
The stump
shimmered darkly. A glamor faded away.
A woman
stood there. She looked very much like Lady but was even more beautiful. She
seemed to look right through me. Or at and into me. She smiled wickedly,
playfully, seductively, perhaps insanely. In a moment the albino bird settled
onto her shoulder.
"You
are impossible."
Her
smile shattered into shards of laughter.
Unless
I was completely, inescapably mad there was only one person this could be. And
she died long before I ever joined the Company.
Soulcatcher.
Croaker
was there when she went down.
Soulcatcher.
That
would explain a lot. That would illuminate a hundred mysteries. But how could
that be?
A huge
black beast that looked something like an ebony tiger padded past me, from behind,
went and settled on its haunches near the woman. There was nothing servile in
its manner.
I was
frightened. If Soulcatcher was alive and in this end of the world and inclined
to meddle she could become the greatest terror around. She was more powerful
than Longshadow, Howler or Lady. But, unless she had changed since the old
days, she preferred to use her talents in small ways, for spite or her own
amusement.
She
winked at me. Then she spun around and just seemed to disappear, leaving more
laughter rippling in the air behind her. Her laughter became the mirth of the
white crow.
The
forvalaka became bored with the show, went off into the distance. And I faded.
85
A crow
cawed overhead. A hand shook my shoulder, not gently. "Are you all right,
sir? Is there a problem?"
"What?"
I was seated on a stone step, clinging to the edge of a massive wooden door. An
albino crow paced back and forth on the door's top edge. The man who held my
shoulder tried to shoo the bird with his free hand and some pithy curses. He
was huge and hairy.
It was
the middle of the night. What light there was came from a lantern the man had
set upon the cobblestones. It set eyes glowing across the street, at a low
level. For an instant I thought I saw something huge and catlike slipping past.
The man
was one of the Shadar patrolmen the Liberator had employed to roam the streets
after dark, maintaining order and keeping a watch for outsiders of dubious
provenance.
Laughter
came from the darkness across the way. The patrolman was not doing a good job.
I was supposed to be one of the good guys here. She was one of the dubious
strangers.
I was
in Taglios!
I
smelled smoke. The lantern?
No. The
odor came from the stairwell behind me.
I
recalled dropping a lamp. Recalled a confused cacophony of wheres and whens.
"I'm all right. Just had a dizzy spell."
Laughter
from across the street.
The
Shadow glanced back but otherwise seemed indifferent. He did not want to
believe my story. He wanted to find something wrong right here right now. He
did not like foreigners. And us northerners were all madmen and drunks. But,
unfortunately, we were also very much in favor with the Palace.
I got
up. I had to get moving. My mind was clearing. The truth was coming back. I had
a desperate need to get to the old familiar entrance to the Palace because I
had to get to my apartment in a hurry.
The
moon suddenly splashed its light down into the street. It had to be past
midnight. I saw the woman watching from across the way. I started to say
something to the Shadar but a sharp whistle came from the distance, in the
direction the monster had seemed to be moving. Another patrolman needed
assistance. He said, "Take care, foreigner." He jogged away.
I ran
too, not pausing to take the elementary step of closing the sally door.
I
reached my customary entrance. Something was wrong. Cordy Mather's Guards
should have been on duty there.
I was
unarmed except for a belt knife. I drew it, pretending I was a fierce commando.
There was no way Mather's gang would leave an entrance uncovered. You could not
bribe those guys to screw up.
I found
the sentries in the guard room. They had been strangled.
No need
to question the prisoner further, now. But who was the target? The Old Man?
Almost certainly. The Radisha? Probably. And anyone else important that they
could get.
I
fought panic, managed to keep from baring off blindly. Thai Dei and Uncle Doj
were up there, anyway.
I
stripped the shirt off one dead guard, wrapped my throat. That should afford
some protection against a Strangler's scarf. Then I bounded upstairs like a
mountain goat who was long out of practice. I reached my own floor so winded I
had to lean against the stairwell wall and strain to keep from puking. My legs
were jelly.
Alarms
banged everywhere now. It was happening as I stood there. I got some wind back,
left the stairwell for the corridor and tripped over a dead man.
He was
filthy and undernourished. A blade had laid him open from left shoulder to
right hip. His right hand lay ten feet away. It still clutched a black rumel.
There was blood everywhere. Some still seeped from the corpse.
I
stared at the scarf. The dead man had murdered many times. Now Kina had
betrayed him.
Such
treachery is one of the goddess's more endearing qualities.
Only
Ash Wand could cut that clean and deep.
Another
corpse lay near my apartment door. A third lay in the doorway itself, holding
the door open.
All the
blood was fresh. The corpses still bled. As yet few flies were in evidence.
Knowing
I did not want to do so I entered my quarters ready to sink bare teeth into
anything that moved.
I
smelled something.
I spun
and stabbed as someone skinny and brown and unwashed flew at me, hit me, threw
me backwards. A black rumel spun around my neck but failed its function because
of the shirt wrapping.
I
hurtled backward into my worktable. There was a sharp pain in the back of my
head. Inside I screamed, "Not again!"
Darkness
closed down.
Pain
awakened me. My arm was on fire.
My
crash into the table had overturned a lamp. My papers, my Annals, were burning.
I was burning. I leaped up shrieking, beating my arm, and when I had that
extinguished I began jumping around trying to save the papers, I saw nothing
else and thought of nothing else. This was my life, going up in smoke. And
beyond the smoke there was only the house of pain, only the bleak seasons.
Way,
way over there, like down a long, cruel tunnel, I saw Uncle Doj kneeling beside
Thai Dei. Between them and me lay three dead men. The floor was invisible
beneath their blood. Two of the dead showed Ash Wand's characteristic precision
cuts. The other had fallen to a cross cut that betrayed a hint of raggedness.
The swordsman had been in the grip of an uncontrolled rage.
Uncle
Doj held Thai Dei's head against his chest. Thai Dei's left arm hung as though
broken. His right surrounded To Tan on his lap. The five-year-old's head was
tilted at a bizarre angle. Thai Dei's face was pale. His mind was not in this
world.
Uncle
Doj rose, came toward me, stared into my eyes, shook his head, then stepped
close and wrapped powerful arms around me. "They were too many and too
fast."
I
collapsed.
This
was the present. This was today. This was the new hell where I did not want to
be.
. . .
fragments . . .
...
just blackened fragments, crumbling between my fingers.
Browned
page corners that reveal half a dozen words in a crabbed hand, their context no
longer known.
All
that remains of two volumes of Annals. A thousand hours of labor. Four years of
history. Gone forever.
Uncle
Doj wants something. He is going to make me drink some strange Nyueng Bao
philtre.
Fragments.
. .
... all
around, fragments of my work, my life, my love and my pain, scattered in this
bleak season. . . .
Darkness.
And in the darkness, shards of time.
Hey
there! Welcome to the city of the dead. . . .
86
The
apartment was overrun with guards. What was going on? I was confused. Another
fainting spell?
Smoke.
Blood. The present. The hard present that breathed pain like a dragon breathes
fire.
I
became aware of the Captain's presence. He came from the back of the apartment
shaking his head. He eyed Uncle Doj curiously.
Cordy
Mather blew in looking like a man encountering the worst horror show of a long
and unhappy lifetime. He went straight to the Old Man. I heard only ". . .
dead men all over the place."
I could
not catch Croaker's response.
".
. . were after you?"
Croaker
shrugged.
"You
just moved out last. . . ."
A Guard
rushed in. He whispered to Mather. Mather barked, "Listen up! We've still
got some live ones out there. Be careful." He and the Old Man moved a
little closer. "They're lost in the labyrinth. We'll need One-Eye to find
them all."
"The
excitement never ends, does it?" Croaker sounded really tired.
To no
one special Uncle Doj announced, "They have only just begun to pay."
His Taglian was excellent considering he had been unable to speak a word the
day before.
Mother
Gota came from the back, bent and moving slowly. Typically of Nyueng Bao women
dealing with disaster she had brewed tea. This was quite possibly the worst day
of her life. It would be a good pot.
The
Captain gave Uncle Doj another searching look, then knelt beside me. "What
happened here, Murgen?"
"I'm
not sure. I walked in in the middle of it. Stabbed a guy. That one. Got thrown
across a table. Tripped and fell through a hole in time. Maybe. Woke up on
fire." I still had charred pages around me. My arm hurt like hell.
"There were dead people all over. I lost it. Next thing I knew it was
now."
Croaker
caught Mather's eye. He used a rocking motion of his right hand to indicate
Uncle Doj.
Cordy
Mather asked Uncle for his story. He spoke perfect Nyueng Bao.
It was
a night of a thousand surprises.
Uncle
Doj said, "These Deceivers were skilled. They gave no warning. I wakened
just an instant before two fell upon me." He explained how he had evaded
death, breaking a neck and a spine in the process. He described his kills
clinically, even critically.
He
spoke harshly of both himself and Thai Dei. He was down on himself because he
had allowed himself to be tempted into pursuing other Deceivers when they fled.
Their flight proved to be a diversion. Thai Dei, who had not been drawn away,
received criticism for showing the instant of hesitation that had cost him his
broken arm.
"Cheap
lesson for him," Croaker observed. Uncle Doj nod' ded, missing the
Captain's sarcasm. He had to face the cruel cost of having allowed himself to
be deceived.
There
were fourteen corpses in my apartment, not including those of butchered Annals.
Twelve had been Deceivers. One had been my wife and one my nephew. Six perished
by Ash Wand, three at Thai Dei's hands. Mother Gota gutted two and I pigstuck
one when I walked in.
Grasping
my shoulder in what was meant to be a comforting gesture, Uncle Doj said,
"A warrior does not slay women or children. That is the work of beasts.
When beasts kill men all men are constrained to hunt and destroy them."
"Nice
talk," Croaker said. "But the Deceivers never claimed to be
warriors." He was not impressed by Uncle's speech.
Neither
was Mather. "It's religion, Old Timer. Their Path. They are the priests of
death. The sex or age of their sacrifices doesn't mean squat. Their victims all
go straight to paradise and never have to take another turn around on the wheel
of life, no matter how buggered up their karma was."
Uncle
Doj's mood grew blacker by the minute. "I know tooga," he muttered.
"No more tooga." Nobody was revealing any mysteries to him.
Cordy
smiled wickedly at the swordmaster. "You guys probably won a high spot on
their desirable victim list by killing so many of them. If you're a Deceiver
there's big status to be gained by killing somebody who has killed a lot of
people."
I heard
Mather's blather but it did not register as sense. I muttered, "Tooga
ain't no crazier than any other religion around here."
That
seemed to offend everyone equally. Good.
Mather
turned to fuss at his Guards. They had failed their trust. My own disaster was
just one of several. Others were still happening.
Numbly,
I said, "You can't defend against this kind of thing, Mather. These guys
weren't commandos." I swatted the nearest corpse with the charred sheets I
was holding. "They came in here expecting to make it to paradise by
midnight. Probably didn't even have an escape plan." In a softer voice, I
said, "Captain, you might better check on Smoke."
Croaker
frowned like I had given away everything but asked only, "You need
anything? Want somebody to stay?" He understood what Sarie meant to me.
"This
is where I came from. When I kept falling back. I got family with me, Captain.
If I start to go bugfuck in the head they'll cool me down. You really want to
help? Fix Thai Dei's arm. Then go do what you got to do."
Croaker
nodded. He made a small gesture that, in normal times meant "Go!" but
which meant a good deal more now. "Narayan Singh is going to wake up some morning
and realize that he has reaped the whirlwind. There is no safe place for him
anymore."
I rose.
Grimly, I set out for my bedroom. Behind me, Thai Dei groaned as Croaker set
his arm. The Old Man paid him no other mind. He was busy issuing orders that
meant a major intensification of the war.
Uncle
Doj followed me.
The
reality hurt less than the anticipation had. I indulged in the pointless
gesture of removing the rumel from my wife's throat. I stood there with the
scarf dangling, staring. This Strangler must have been a true master. Her neck
was not broken, nor had her throat been bruised. She looked like she was
sleeping. There was no pulse when I touched her, though. "Uncle Doj. Can I
be alone ?"
"Of
course. But drink this first. It will help you to rest." He handed me
something that smelled really nasty.
Did we
do this already?
He went
away. I laid down beside Sarie for the last time. I held her while the medicine
began to course through me, calling forth sleep. I thought all the usual
thoughts, nurtured the usual hatreds. I thought the unthinkable, that it might
be best that this had happened before Sahra learned what it really meant to be
Company.
I
reminisced the great miracle. Ours was a match that never should have been. A
match neither ever regretted for an instant, yet one created by a force so
slight as the unspoken whim of an old woman cursed with hysterical, unreliable
precognitive visions.
I
thought both sanely and crazily and commenced the process of beatification that
is inevitable after any untimely death. I slept. But even in Nod I could not
escape the pain. I dreamed cruel dreams I could not reclaim when I awakened. It
was almost as if Kina herself were mocking me, telling me that triumph was a
costly deception.
Sarie
was gone when I awakened, my head throbbing with a medicinal hangover. I
stumbled around until I ran into Mother Gota. The old woman was fussing over
some tea and talking to herself exactly the way she talked to the rest of the
world.
"Where
is Sahra?" I asked. "Tea. Please. What happened to her?"
Gota
looked at me like I was mad. "She is dead." No pulling punches for
her.
"I
know that. Her body is gone."
"They
have taken her home."
"What?
Who?" Anger began to rise within me. How dare they . . . ? Who was they?
"Doj.
Thai Dei. Her cousins and uncles. They have taken Sahra and To Tan home. I am
here to watch over you."
"She
was my wife. I ..."
"She
was Nyueng Bao before she was your wife. She is Nyueng Bao now. She will be
Nyueng Bao tomorrow. Hong Tray's fantasies cannot change that."
I
gained control before I exploded completely. Gota was right, from a Nyueng Bao
point of view.
Also,
there was not a lot I could do about it right now. Not without coming up with a
lot more ambition than I had this morning. All I really wanted to do was sit
around feeling sorry for myself.
I went
back to our room with my tea. I settled on our bed, picked up the jade amulet
that had belonged to Hong Tray. It seemed very warm this morning, more alive
than I. I had not worn it for a long time. I slipped it onto my wrist now.
I could
work my anger out on Uncle Doj when he got back.
If he
came.
87
Not one
Strangler attack team achieved its tactical objective, but even so their raid
was successful psychologically. It stunned the city. It shocked the leadership.
It generated terror out of all proportion to actual damages. Croaker grabbed it
and turned it around.
Next
morning, while most of us were still wrestling with our emotions, he went to
the Taglian mob and spoke in his old guise as Liberator. He announced a new and
furious era of total, relentless warfare against the Shadowmaster and tooga
although he divulged few real facts about the Palace raid. That set rumor
running wild through the alleys and byways and fueled fresh anger. For years
the war had been a long way away, in the old Shadowland, and so had become
emotionally remote to most of the people. The Deceiver raid brought the war
back home. The old enthusiasm resurfaced.
The
Liberator told the crowd that the years of preparation were over. It was time
to carry justice to the wicked.
But
moving immediately meant a winter campaign. I asked the Old Man if he really
intended that.
"Damned
straight. More or less. They have their feet up down there. You know that.
You've been riding Smoke. I mean, who would be crazy enough to take a crack at
the Dandha Presh when the snow is flying?"
Who
indeed? "It'll mean some major hardships for the soldiers."
"If
an old fart like me can take it they all can take it."
Right.
Only some of us can take it better than others. Some of us are obsessed.
Hell.
Us Black Company guys have obsessions and hatreds enough for everybody.
Work
became my all. I was past the evil time. No longer did I fall back into cruel
yesterdays in order to escape crueler todays that I could detect. But I did not
sleep well. Hell still lurked beyond sleep's wall. I lost myself in the Annals,
rerecording everything the fire had claimed. I ran away by riding Smoke out
into the past, where and when I could, to check my recollections.
One-Eye's
arsenal increased its production. The Old Man drove the ruling class crazy
trying to get money to pay for everything.
Word of
the new stage spread through the Taglian territories as fast as horses could
run.
Lady
began gathering her forces and training them to deal with the darknesses that
had given the Shadowmasters their name.
I
became aware that Goblin had dropped out of sight, completely, but that only
weeks after the actual event. I feared that he had been murdered. But Croaker
did not seem concerned.
One-Eye
was fussed. He was desperate to get his sidekick connected with my
mother-in-law but he could not unearth a trace of the little toad.
In the
night when the wind no longer licks through its unglazed windows , nor prances
along its untenanted halls, nor whispers to its million creeping shadows, the
fortress is filled with the silence of stone.
Cold
cruel dreams stir within the figure pinned to the throne so ancient that bits
have given up to dry rot. A gleam from beyond flickers. The figure sighs,
drawing in the light, exhaling a balloon of dream that somehow finds its way
through the tortuous passages of the fastness and out into the world in search
of a receptive mind. Upon the plain itself the shadows swirl like minnows
sensing the passing of a huge predator.
The
stars wink down in cold irony.
There
is always a way.
88
House
of pain? Mocking laughter. She is beautiful. Yes. Almost as beautiful as I. But
she is not for you.
The
woman tucked a child in for the night. Her slightest movement bespoke grace.
I ...
There was an I, suddenly. NO! Not for you! She is mine!
Nothing
is yours but what I give you. And I give you pain. This is the house of pain.
No! Whatever you are . . . GO!
89
Ouch!"
I opened my eyes. Uncle Doj and Thai Dei crouched beside me, one to either
side, looking concerned. I rolled my head, surprised to see them back so soon.
I was
on the floor in my workroom. But I was dressed for bed. "What am I doing
here?"
"You
walked in your sleep," Doj told me. "Also talked, which alerted
us."
"Talked?"
I never talk in my sleep. But I do not walk in my sleep, either. "Gods
damn it! I was having another spell!" And this time I remembered. Some.
"I have to get this down. Right now. Before I lose it." I scrambled
across the room. In moments I was scratching away.
And
when I was done I realized I did not have a clue about anything. I threw my pen
down.
Mother
Gota appeared. She carried a pot of tea. She poured for me, then for Doj and
Thai Dei. Sahra's death had hurt her deeply. For the moment her normal,
contentious character was submerged. She was an automaton.
This
had been going on for days.
"What
is the trouble?" Uncle Doj asked.
"There's
nothing there. I remembered perfectly but can't find a clue toward an
explanation."
"Then
you must relax. Stop fighting yourself. Thai Dei. Get the practice
swords."
I
wanted to scream that this was not the time. But this was his answer to all
stress. Come to the swords. Pursue the exercise rituals. Parade the stances. To
do it right required total concentration. And it always worked, no matter how
much I disbelieved.
Even
Gota joined us, though she was less adept than 1.
90
The
night that I had tried to find my way back from Smoke's hideout I had wondered
if One-Eye had cast some confusion spells around there. I learned that he had
and had scattered random pockets of confusion all through the disused parts of
the Palace so the one critical area would not stand out. He gave me an amulet
of charmed woolen strings, several colors twisted together, that I was supposed
to wear on my wrist. It would let me pass through the spells no more confused
than my usual state.
"Be
careful," he told me. "I change these spells every day now that
you're working Smoke regular. I don't want nobody stumbling in there while
you're out of body. Especially not the Radisha."
That
made sense. There was no calculating Smoke s value. No instrument for espionage
this valuable had ever existed before. We did not dare risk compromising him.
The Old
Man gave me a list of regular checks he wanted made. These included keeping a
close watch on Blade. He did not use that information immediately, though. I
supposed he was laying back, letting Blade gain confidence. And, occasionally,
letting Blade deal with our religious problem children for us, too.
I did
not ask but I am sure the policy was coolly deliberate. The priesthoods
provided our main political challenges. Made sense to me, too, to use them up
keeping Blade from getting too strong.
I had
my personal list of investigations, too, some meant to satisfy my own
curiosity, most to get straight events that needed to be recorded in the
Annals. I spent about ten hours a day just working on the books.
I rise,
write, eat, write, visit Smoke, write, sleep for a little while, then get up
and do it all again. I do not sleep long or well because I do not care to tarry
in the house of pain.
Uncle
Doj has decided not to return to his swamp. Likewise, Mother Gota. They stay
out of my way, mostly. But they are always here, always watching. They have
expectations.
The new
phase of the war is here. They have decided to play a part. They mean the
cruelty of the Deceivers to be requited by the cruelty of the Nyueng Bao.
One of
the big problems of espionage, I have discovered, is figuring out where to look
for the information you want. When I need to know something for the Annals I
usually have an idea when things happened, where and who was involved. It is a
chance to flit off and double check my memory, which I have found to be
astonishingly unreliable.
Apparently
none of us really remember anything exactly the way it happened. And often the
divergence is proportional to the amount of ego and wishful thinking we have
invested.
One-Eye
has his ego problems, of course. Maybe they are why he will not let me wander
through his arms factory. If it does not have something to do with guarding his
ledgers from outside scrutiny. I will spy on him now that he plans to close
down soon.
One-Eye
carries a lot on his old shoulders. Among the things he does is he acts as a
sort of Minister of Armaments. He has a whole fortified section of town where
he oversees the manufacture of everything from arrowheads to monster siege
engines.
Much of
his production gets crated up and sent straight to the docks, to be loaded
aboard barges and sent downriver to the delta where, via a series of crude
canals, the barges are worked over into the Naghir River, which shares the
delta. Then they travel up the Naghir and its tributaries to armories near the
frontier. I have no doubt that some of the material fails to reach its
destination. I expect that One-Eye somehow profits. I hope he has sense enough
not to sell to the enemy. Croaker catches him doing that and One-Eye will think
that Blade gets treated like a mischievous kid brother.
My
first swoop into the arsenal was a quick psychic raid. One-Eye's compound
consisted of a gaggle of once dissimilar and unrelated structures now
interconnected in a mad maze. All windows and most doors had been bricked up.
Men selected for their size, bad tempers and lack of imagination infested the few
entrances. They allowed no one in and no one out. The street outside the
freight entrance was crowded day and night. Files of wagons and carts, drawn by
weary oxen, crept forward to be unloaded and loaded by weary workmen watched
banefully by the unimaginative men, who foamed at the mouth if carters and
laborers so much as made eye contact. Around and amongst the carts swarmed
countless runners carrying long poles from which hung dozens of pails filled
with hot food for the workers. The guards checked every pail. They even took
turns checking on each other.
Taglios
has a richly diverse, complex, and deeply specialized labor economy. Folks will
make a living one way or another and other folks will give them room. Near the
Palace is a bazaar devoted entirely to grooming services, catering mainly to
Palace functionaries. One guy does nothing but trim nose hairs. Right beside
him, operating in a space less than four feet wide, with oils and silver tools
displayed on a tiny inlaid table, is an old character who will clean the wax
from your ears. He does nothing else but retail gossip. This business has been
in his family for generations. He is sad because he has no son to inherit.
When he
goes his family will lose that space in the bazaar.
It is
all symptomatic of horrid overpopulation and the desperate difficulty of
surviving at the bottom. I would not want to be a Taglian of low caste.
Lucky
me, I did not have to check in with One-Eye's thugs. There seemed to be no
provision against magical espionage. I darted inside. I guess One-Eye did not
worry because Longshadow could no longer send his pets snooping this far. But
what about the Howler? He could sneak up on us any time he wanted.
Trying
to track Howler was one of my regular duties.
The
arsenal workers were doing ordinary things. Making arrowheads. Sharpening them.
Making arrows. Fletching them. Building artillery pieces. Attempting to mass
produce a light cotton body armor for the ordinary infantryman who, no doubt,
would discard it because it was hot and uncomfortable and a nuisance to lug
around.
Only
the glassblowers surprised me.
There
were two dozen workers in that department and most were employed producing
small, thin bottles. A platoon of apprentices tended fires, heated the silicates
that became raw glass, carried off trays of bottles once they cooled. Those
went to carpenters who placed them into crates with sawdust packing. A few of
the crates went aboard big long haul wagons but most went to the waterfront.
What
the devil?
There
was a big piece of slate in One-Eye's office. Upon it, in Forsberger, were
chalked what appeared to be production targets. Fifty thousand bottles. Three
million arrows. Five hundred thousand javelins. Ten thousand cavalry lances.
Ten thousand sabers. Eight thousand saddles. One hundred fifty thousand
infantry short swords.
Some of
those numbers were absurd and there was no way any could be reached by
One-Eye's arsenal alone. But production took place all over the Taglian
territories most often in one-man blacksmith shops. One-Eye's main job was to
keep track. Which looked to me a lot like letting the fox do bedcheck at the
chicken house.
The
list also included animals and wagons and lumber by the hundred barge loads,
much of which I did understand. But five thousand box kites, ready for
assembly, twelve feet by three feet? Each with one thousand feet of string? One
hundred thousand yards of silk in bolts six feet tall?
He was
not going to get that one.
I went
roving to see what else was being readied for Mogaba and his friends.
I saw
training camps where commando teams prepared for every imaginable terrain and
mission. Down south, Lady pursued her own programs, creating forces prepared to
operate offensively on the sorcerous battlefield.
She had
scoured the Taglian territories for every person possessed of even the
slightest magical talent and had schooled them just enough to make them useful
in a program I could not fathom no matter how I poked at it. As Longshadow had
noted, she was stripping the Taglian territories of bamboo. That got cut into
several standard lengths and had red-hot rods run through to burn out the
joints. Lady had the resulting tubes packed with little spongy colored marbles
created by her squads of hedge wizards.
Another
game of baffle the Shadowmaster? Half of what we were doing was smoke and
mirrors meant to confuse the opposition and make them waste resources or commit
them in the wrong places. But I was more confused than Longshadow could
possibly be.
Lady
slept less than did the Captain. Croaker seldom slept more than five hours a
night. If sheer drive could conquer Mogaba and the Shadowmaster we were
surefire winners.
Both
Lady and the Old Man hide so much inside themselves that even after all these years
I have no sure grasp of how they think. They share a strong love but seldom
demonstrate it.
They
want to recover their daughter and avenge themselves upon the Deceivers but
never speak of the child publicly. Croaker is determined to lead the Company
back to mysterious Khatovar, to unearth its origins, but does not talk about
that at all anymore.
On the
surface it would seem those two live only for the war.
I
drifted back to One-Eye's factory. I was reluctant to leave Smoke. I knew if I
delayed much longer I would return to find my body exhausted, starved, and
extremely thirsty. The smart way to use Smoke was to take short journeys mixed
with lots of times out for snacks and drinks. But that was hard to recall out
there, especially when there was so much pain waiting back in my own slice of
reality.
This
time I discovered a room I had overlooked earlier. In it Vehdna workers moved
lazily amongst a dozen ceramic tubs. Some carried buckets from which they
scooped fluid into the tubs a cup at a time. The fluid came from a vat a man
kept stirring when he was not adding water or some white powder.
I saw
little remarkable about those tubs. The solution got added at one end. At the
other end fluid trickled down a glass tube into a large earthenware jug. Once
filled each jug got stopped and carried carefully to storage on shelves well
out of the way. Unlike wines, they were shelved upright. Curiously, the lamps
in the room burned unusually bright.
I
studied one tub, noted that small bubbles kept rising at the end where the
workers added the fluid. At the far end, well below the surface, were dozens of
short rods caked with a silvery white substance. On the floor of the tub were
several handleless glass cups. Using ceramic tools a gloved worker moved a cup
under a rod, scraped stuff off into the cup. Once that settled he used wooden
tongs to lift the cup from the tub. He carried it with considerable care but,
nevertheless, managed to stumble.
The
stuff off the rod blazed fiercely when exposed to the air.
I had
to get back to my flesh. I had to eat. Soon enough I would have to pack because
real soon all of us would be headed south. The war's next stage was gathering
momentum.
91
Otto
and Hagop were back, after innumerable frustrating delays on the last river
leg, which should have been the easiest part of their journey. They were
concealed in the same Shadar waterfront warehouse that I had used to hold the
captives from the Grove of Doom. One-Eye collected me from my quarters. He and I
and my brown shadow headed for the river. The Old Man beat us there. He could
drop everything when he really wanted. "You all right, Murgen?"
"I'm handling it."
"He's
spending too much time with Smoke," One-Eye said. "That don't sound
healthy. Would you look at these guys?" He meant Otto and Hagop, though
the others of their expedition were confined to the warehouse, too, and were
not enthusiastic about being kept away from their families. It had been almost
three years.
Neither
Otto nor Hagop looked much different. I told Hagop, "I'd almost given up
on you guys." We shook hands. I shook with Otto, too. "I thought your
luck finally ran out." "We came close, Murgen. We used up a
lot." "So," the Old Man said. "What took so long?"
"Actually, there ain't that much to tell." Hagop looked at Croaker
oddly, as though to make sure he was talking to the real Old Man. Croaker was
in his Shadar disguise. "We went, we did what we could, we came
back." Like a fourteen-thousand-mile round trip was routine? In the Company
we do not brag about the big stuff. "We didn't do a lot of
sightseeing."
While
Hagop talked Otto made a circuit of the doors and windows. He asked, "We
need to worry about spies?"
"This
is Taglios," Croaker replied. By which he meant that everyone is always
watching everyone else, looking for an edge. "We figured you guys would
have then all squared away by now."
"That's
a lot of squaring. Shadowlander spies, yeah, they aren't a problem. Lady and
Goblin and One-Eye took care of them."
I said,
"We still have the priesthoods."
"And
we've had a little Deceiver trouble lately."
Something
in my face warned Hagop against pursuing that. Not now. "How goes the war,
then?"
"Slowly,"
Croaker told him. "We can talk about that later. You do us any good up
there?"
"Not
much, to be honest."
"Damn!"
"We
did get a bunch of stuff for the Annals. Murgen, you might want to work it in.
It's stuff about what other people were doing that will help make better sense
of what we did. I figure you could work it in between stuff that Croaker wrote.
That way them that comes after us can see both sides. Huhm?"
"Maybe
you ought to take over." Sourly.
"Learn
me how to read and write. I'm too old for this other shit."
"Might
do that," I glanced at Croaker. "Long as you don't edit me."
The Old
Man grinned.
Hagop
chuckled. "The gods forfend, Murgen. Not me. Hey. I found out all about
what happened after we left up there, too. You wouldn't believe the excitement.
The Limper came back one more time. Don't worry. It's all settled now. The
empire is boring these days."
"Sounds
like I wish I was back home."
Croaker
asked, "Did you actually get into the Tower?"
"We
spent six months there. Mainly getting the runaround at first."
"And?"
"We
finally convinced them that Lady was getting her powers back. They got
cooperative then. Folks in the Tower these days like not having her
around."
"Gee.
That'll break her heart," I said. Hagop grinned. "Yeah. They won't
send us any help. Say they don't want to make any new enemies. I think it's
mostly because they don't want Lady getting nostalgic for her good old days and
heading back north."
Croaker
said, "We figured that. There's nothing in this for them but keeping Lady
away. What did you get?"
"They
opened their records. Lent us translators. Even opened graves when we
asked."
"They
would have an interest in who was buried there themselves."
"Damned
if they didn't. They had to change their linens after we told them who all
turned up alive down here. See, they had a major scare when the Limper came
back and damned near took them apart."
I said,
"That guy had a bigger boner for us than Soulcatcher does." No way
did we need to add the Limper to our list of enemies. "What about my
turnip seeds?"
Hagop
said, "They made sure of Limper this time. Absolutely sure. I got your
seeds. Turnips and parsnips and even some seed potatoes if they haven't
spoiled."
Croaker
said, "They would make sure of Limper." He watched Otto prowl. Otto
was restless, uncomfortable. "So they let you poke around and even gave
you some help with it. What did you learn?" That had been the point. To
see if they knew anything way up north that we could use here.
"Not
much. It don't seem likely that Longshadow was ever one of the Taken."
I was
confident of that. I was sure he would have betrayed himself to Howler by now
if they had been allies in the past. "Those potatoes. Did you get the
little kind like I..."
Hagop
glowered at me, told the Old Man, "There is the remotest chance that he
could be the Faceless Man, Moonbiter, or Nightcrawler although everybody up
there was sure those three really did bite the dust. It was just that we
couldn't come up with any bodies."
"How
about one of the later Taken?" Croaker mused.
"Five
actually survived. Journey, Whisper, Blister, Creeper and Learned. But Lady
stripped all five of their powers. In front of witnesses."
"But
Lady has been getting her powers back," I argued.
"A
point. On the other hand, we know the exact day when the Shadowmasters
appeared. Even the hour, I gather. All the later Taken were still in business
up north. In fact, most of them weren't even Taken yet."
I
traded glances with the Old Man. He began pacing. He said, "When
Soulcatcher held me captive she told me one of the Shadowmasters who died at
Dejagore wasn't ever one of the Taken."
I
added, "Neither was Shadowspinner."
Hagop
said, "All they could tell us, really, was that they didn't have a clue if
Longshadow used to be one of the old mob. The written record supported
them."
Croaker
kept pacing, narrowly avoided a collision with Otto, but stayed well away from
the cluster of unhappy Taglians awaiting his blessing upon their desires to go
home. After all this time could they recognize him through his Shadar disguise?
Probably.
I was
sure he was thinking that this war with the Shadowmasters was no ordinary
struggle, that the stakes went far beyond simple survival. He said, "We've
taken three of the bastards down. But Longshadow is the worst. He is the
craziest. He's working on Overlook day and night. . . ."
"Still?"
"Still.
The poor idiot is a living testimonial to the fact that everything takes longer
and costs more. Even magic can't get you around that. But he's a lot closer to
being finished than he was when you left. And if he does get done before we get
him we can bend over and kiss our butts goodbye. It'll be the end of the world.
His plan is to pull his hole in behind him and loose the dogs of hell then come
out later and collect up the pieces of whatever is left."
I
grumbled, "I've heard this one before." I never took it entirely
serious despite the characters involved. But it did sound like Croaker believed
Longshadow was capable of doing it. Maybe his adventures with Smoke had shown
him something
I had
missed so far.
So the
end of the world was imminent, either at the hands of Kina and her Deceivers or
at those of Longshadow. Either way, only the Black Company could prevent the
tragedy.
Yeah.
Sure.
I wanted
to tell Croaker, old buddy, we're only the Black Company. We're just a gang of
misfits who can't make it in life except as hired swords. Sure, we got
ourselves into an asskicking contest with some bizarro creeps now but there
ain't nobody going to care in a hundred years. We are entangled in an affair of
honor because of promises we made and stuff like the Stranglers snatching your
kid. But don't try to sell anybody on saving the world.
I was
scared the Old Man might be developing a case of the big head, like Longshadow,
Mogaba, the Howler, Kina, all the devils of our time. One of the Annalist's
duties is to remind the Captain that he is not a demigod. But I was out of
practice. Hell, I could not deflate Uncle Doj when he got going.
"I
need an edge, Hagop," Croaker said. "I need it bad. Tell me you found
something. Anything." "I found Murgen's turnip seeds."
"Damnit. . . ."
"The
best suggestion they had was that we might try to trace the survivors of the
Circle of Eighteen." Well. That was interesting.
Croaker
stopped pacing. He looked at me as though I might be able to tell him
something. I saw his focus fade. He was remembering the Battle at Charm.
The
Circle of Eighteen raised huge rebel armies to pull Lady down. The culminating
battle at Charm had been the bloodiest in recorded history.
The
Circle did not win.
Croaker
said, "We killed Harden and Raker. Lady turned Whisper to Taken. That
accounts for three."
"A
lot more just got lost when we whipped them," I observed. My
"we" drew smiles from Otto, Hagop and the Old Man. I was maybe twelve
at the time and had not yet even heard of the Black Company.
Hagop
said, "We were too damned thorough back then, boss. We went out looking
for and flat could not find any Rebel veterans to interrogate. We couldn't even
find names for seven of the Eighteen. But there were people at the Tower who
were junior officers then who claimed they had witnessed the deaths of all of
the Eighteen except one called Trinket, those who became Taken, and one of the
ones whose names we couldn't find out."
"Trinket."
Croaker resumed pacing. He mused, "I remember Trinket. But just the name.
We were at the Stair of Tear. We got word that Trinket was surrounded. In the
east. We were busy with Harden. I don't know if I even mentioned it in the
Annals."
Ha! A
chance to show off. "You did. One sentence. That's it, though. You said
Whisper had taken Rust and Trinket was surrounded."
"Whisper.
Yes. She'd been Taken only a little while." He had been there to help set
up the Taking. "That's one for Lady. She would know if there was anything
between those two."
"Trinket
was female," Hagop told us. "What's Longshadow?"
Croaker
frowned.
I said,
"He never gets all the way naked but I'm pretty sure Longshadow is a he.
Physically."
The Old
Man offered me a daggers look. Damn! But the Taglians were way off in a corner
sulking. None of them caught my slip. Hagop was not on the list of three,
either, though. I hastened to amend myself. "But Smoke is the only one who
ever saw him in the flesh. And he ain't talking."
"He
still alive?" Hagop asked.
"Barely,"
Croaker said. "We keep him alive. Men have come back from comas before.
That's it, Hagop? All that time and travel. That's all you got me?"
"That's
the way she goes sometimes, boss." He grinned. "Oh. I almost forgot.
They did give me a coffin full of papers and stuff that night have belonged to
some of the people who maybe could have turned into Longshadow if he was ever
one of the Eighteen. The stuff is all packaged and labeled in case some wizard
decides he wants to use them."
Croaker's
face lit up like a bonfire. "You shithead." Grinning, he yelled,
"Otto, send them guys home, why don't you? Bonharj, the rest of you, what
the hell are you doing hanging around here? Your people want to see you."
He told me, "Guess we ought to ship that stuff down to Lady. She'll know
what to do with it."
Otto
hustled the Taglians out of the warehouse. They seemed baffled by the
Liberator's sudden generosity. Me too.
Hagop
said, "Now how about you guys telling what's been happening?"
I said,
"A whole lot. But nothing big and dramatic. We keep nibbling them to
death."
"Is
Mogaba really the head honcho of Longshadow's army?" "Absolutely.
He's one kickass sonofabitch, too, only Longshadow won't let him run loose. He
has to mess with us secondhand, mostly, letting Blade do his dirty work."
"Huh?
Blade? Like in Blade of Blade and Mather and Swan?" "Oh. Yeah."
I glanced at the Old Man, whose expression had gone stony. "Yeah. Blade
defected while you were gone."
"Let's
get back to the Palace, Murgen," Croaker said. "We have work to
do."
92
Croaker
did not say much as we walked, though he did snarl at people who dared stare at
the Shadar and his white-devil companion. We northerners are so few that even
after years few of the commoners have yet seen any of us. And, of course, we
have done very little to dispel our evil reputation.
Some
intellectuals inside the priesthoods have argued that the friendship of today's
Black Company is as deadly to Taglios as was the enmity of its remote forbears.
Their
complaint may have merit.
We were
coming up to the Palace. Croaker kept grumbling to himself, mostly because so
little had come of the expedition. That had been his pet and his expectations
had run away with him. He asked, "How long are your in-laws going to hang
around?"
I was
not going to make him happy. "For the duration. They want their slice of
Narayan Singh." The Old Man still distrusted Uncle Doj.
"They
know about Smoke?"
"Of
course not! Damnit. . . !"
"Keep
it that way. You find his library again yet?"
I had
mentioned having stumbled onto that. "Not yet." Fact was, I had made
no more than a token effort. I had too much else on my mind.
"Try
a little harder." He knew. "Don't spend so much time with Smoke. And
I think it might be useful to look at those old Annals before we head
south."
"How
come you never looked for the library yourself? You've had years."
"I
heard it got destroyed the night that Smoke got mauled. Now it looks like that
must have happened in some other room. The Radisha wouldn't mislead me about
something like that. Would she? Nah."
We
paused while a Vehdna cavalry regiment passed in review outside the Palace. It
had come from upcountry somewhere and was just paying its respects before
taking the field. The robes and turbans of the troopers were clean and gaudy.
Their lances were all brightly pennoned. Their spearheads gleamed. Their mounts
were beautiful, admirably trained and perfectly groomed.
"Too
bad pretty don't win wars," I said. The Black Company is not pretty.
Croaker
grunted. I glanced at him. And surprised what might have been a teardrop in the
corner of his eye.
He knew
what awaited all those brave young men.
We
crossed behind the horsemen, stepping carefully.
One-Eye
met us in the hall way outside Croaker's apartment. "What's the
word?"
Croaker
shook his head. "No magic answers."
"We
always get to do it the hard way."
I told
him, "I'm supposed to look for that library room I found the other night.
You got something to help keep me from getting confused?"
He
looked at me like that might be a tall order. "I already gave you
something." He indicated the yarn on my wrist.
"That
was for your spells. There's probably still a bunch of
Smoke's
left over, too."
The
runt thought about that. "Could be. Give me that." His gaze fell on
my amulet as I removed the yarn. "Jade?" He held my wrist
momentarily.
"I
think so. It belonged to Sarie's grandmother, Hong Tray. You never met her. She
was the old Speaker's wife."
"You
been wearing this all these years and I never noticed?"
"I
never wore it till Sarie . . . Until the other night. Sarie wore it sometimes,
though, when she wanted to dress up."
"Ah,
yes. I recall." He frowned like he was trying to remember something, then
shrugged, went off into a shadow and muttered to the yarn for a while. When he
returned he said, "That ought to get you through anybody's confusion spells.
Except maybe your own."
"What?"
"You
had any of your attacks lately?"
"No.
Not that I remember." I offered the amendment because I had had them
before without being aware of them. Apparently.
"You
had any new ideas about what caused them? Or who you kept running into when you
went back to Dejagore?"
"I
was escaping from the pain of losing Sarie."
One-Eye
laid one of his more intense stares upon me, just the way he had whenever he
helped fish me out of the past. Evidently he was not convinced.
I
asked, "Is it suddenly important again?"
"It
never stopped being important, Murgen. There just hasn't been time to pursue
it."
Nor was
there now.
He
said, "We just have to let you take charge of yourself, to watch out and
do the right thing in a crunch."
One-Eye
being totally serious? That was spooky.
Croaker
had lost interest. He was back at his charts and figures. But he did reiterate,
"I want to see those books before we hit the road."
I can
take a hint, sometimes. "I'm on my way, Boss."
93
I
stopped in to make sure Smoke was still breathing. I fed him while I was there.
Keeping him fed and clean was now my cover for being there should someone like
the Radisha ever penetrate One-Eye's network of spells, much augmented since I
had begun working with the old wizard. Then I tried to recall the various
twists and turns I had taken the night I found Smoke's library. My memories
were not clear. That had been a time of stress and a lot had happened since.
I did
know it was on this same level. I had not gone downstairs or up. And it was in
an area apparently undisturbed since Smoke's own last visit. The dust and
cobwebs were heavy and untouched.
It did
not take me long to reach desert territory. It was almost as though the deep
interior of the Palace became a vast and dusty maze, needing no spells of
confusion to protect it.
I found
the dead man only minutes after leaving Smoke. I smelled him first, of course,
and heard the flies. That told me what would be coming up before I saw
anything. Only the who was a mystery until the Strangler appeared at the limit
of my lamplight. He had fled here to die of his wounds, trapped by darkness and
confusing spells.
I
shuddered. That touched my deepest fears, the wellspring of my nightmares, my
crushing dread of tight, dark places underground.
I
wondered if his fickle goddess had taken delight in his unhappy end.
I moved
around the corpse carefully, averting my eyes and pinching my nose. In death he
continued to serve Kina's corruption avatar.
Soon
afterward I discovered evidence that at least one more Strangler had become
entangled in the confusion of the Palace. I nearly stepped in it, being alerted
only when my approach startled the attendant flies.
I
paused. "Uh-oh." That looked fairly fresh. Maybe there was still a
madman in here willing to dance for his goddess.
I
started moving much slower and more carefully, one hand at my throat. I started
imagining noises. All the ghost stories I ever heard came back to haunt me.
Each few steps I paused, turned around completely, searching for the gleam of
eyes betrayed by my lamp. Why did I decide to do this alone?
I began
to see signs of recent traffic. I knelt, discovered what appeared to be my own
previous footprints in the dust. Someone had been through since, armed with a
battery of candles.
Drops
of wax had fallen into the disturbed dust. And somebody had been through after
that, possibly crawling, perhaps even eating what wax drops he could find.
I listened
to the silence. This deep within the Palace even vermin were scarce. They could
only eat each other.
Still
cautious, I followed the trails of those who had come after me. My heart
thumped like it was about to explode.
I
started sneezing. And once I did the sneezes just kept coming. I could hold off
for half a minute sometimes, but that only made the next sneeze worse.
Then I
started hearing all sorts of sounds. And could not still myself long enough to
reassure me that I was imagining these noises, too, or to get a fix on their
source if they were genuine. Maybe it would be better to do this some other
time. Then the broken door loomed out of the darkness. I stopped and studied
it. I had a notion it was hanging a little differently. Disturbances in the
dust suggested that someone had visited since I had done so myself.
Cautiously,
touching nothing, I rounded the door, stepped into the room. "Shit!"
It had
been torn apart. Few of the books, bound or scroll, remained on their shelves
or in their cubbies. The undisturbed items, where I could decipher titles, were
prosaic inventories or tax records or irregular city histories of little
interest. I wondered why Smoke would bother with those. Maybe just to hide the
good stuff? Maybe because he was fire marshall as well as court wizard?
Whatever,
the good stuff was gone. And by that I mean not only any long missing volumes
of the Annals that might have been lying around but also a number of what I had
suspected to be magical texts when last I looked in.
"Damn
it! Damn it!" I wanted to throw things, to break things, to bounce rocks
off villains' heads, Even before I found the single fallen feather I had a good
idea of what had happened.
I
collected that feather.
On the
way back I definitely heard sounds that did not spring from my imagination. I
did not bother to investigate. The man tried to follow my light but could not
keep up.
94
Croaker
looked up, puzzled, when I laid the white feather in front of him and said,
"The books are gone. And there are Deceivers lost in there. At least one
dead one and one still alive."
"Gone?"
He plucked the feather off the document he was studying.
"Somebody
took them."
His
distress was apparent only because his hand began to shake. "How?"
"They
just walked in off the street and carried them away." I did not for a
moment consider the possibility that someone inside the Palace had visited
Smoke's books.
He said
nothing for a while. "What perfect timing." Another silence.
"What's this feather?"
"Maybe
a message. Maybe just a lost feather. I found one like it when I discovered
that the Widowmaker armor had disappeared from hiding in Dejagore."
"A white feather?"
"From
an albino crow." I ran through my catalog of encounters, real and possibly
imagined.
His
hand shook again. "You never actually met her. But you recognized her? She
was here the night the Deceivers struck? And you never said anything?"
"I
forgot that. That was the worst night of my life, Captain. That night has twisted
everything else around me. . . ."
He
gestured for silence. He thought. I stared. He was nothing like the Croaker who
had been Company physician and Annalist when I joined up. After a while, he
muttered, "That must be it."
"What?"
"The
voice you encountered whenever you were pulled back to Dejagore. Think. Was it
inconsistent?"
"I
don't think I understand."
"Did
it seem like it might be different people talking all the time?"
Now I
got it. "I don't think so. It did seem to have different attitudes and
styles sometimes."
"The
bitch. The sneaking bitch. Always playing another game. I won't swear this for
sure, Murgen, but I think the root mystery behind you tumbling all over time
must have been Soulcatcher playing."
Not a
wholly original theory to me. Soulcatcher rated high on my own suspects list.
Motive was my big stumbling block. I could not figure a "why Murgen?"
for anybody, Soulcatcher included.
"Where
is she now?" Croaker asked.
"I
don't have the foggiest."
"Can
you find out?"
"Smoke
balks every time I try to head her way."
Croaker
considered that. "Try again."
"You're
the boss."
"As
long as it suits everybody's convenience. You sure your in-laws won't go
home?"
"They're
going wherever I go."
"Tell
them we'll be on the road before the end of the week."
"I
look forward to that like a case of the piles." I took my white feather
and stomped off for a session with the fire mar' shall.
95
I did
not go straight there. I stopped by the apartment, collected a flask of tea, a
gallon of water, a basket of fried chicken and fried fish, rice and some of
Mother Gota's special baked rocks. I expected a long session. There were things
I wanted to do beyond my expected swift rebuff in a search for Soulcatcher.
Smoke
seemed unchanged. As always. I wondered what he would remember if, as sometimes
happened, one day he just woke up from his coma. I hear tell people have done
that even after being under years longer than Smoke has.
I
filled my stomach with water before I left the apartment. I took in more fluid
when I reached Smoke. I went to work.
Drifting.
Quick check of all the villains. Mogaba and Longshadow, Howler and Narayan
Singh and the Daughter of Night were all acceptably located, either at Overlook
or Charandaprash. Blade was skirting the Shindai Kus with maybe twelve hundred
men, trying to get behind the Prahbrindrah Drah, but the Prince had a screen of
light cavalry out far enough to give him plenty of warning. The man had a
knack.
Before
I carried out my obligation to look for Soulcatcher I took Smoke back in time
to see just how early I could find and spy upon some of the principals. I
wanted to see what had happened that night I had been held captive and
tortured. I wanted to unveil the details of Mogaba's defection.
I found
that I could not go back that far.
I
recalled that raft on the lake, Mogaba cursing in the darkness. That had to be
it. He should not have been there. What honest mission could have taken him
ashore? Had he changed allegiances while still holding Dejagore for the good
guys? Was his deal already made when Croaker faced him down? Did he meet the
Howler out there, far enough away that Goblin and One-Eye would not detect the
sorcerer's flying carpet?
Maybe.
And if he had that might explain why even Sindawe and Ochiba were willing to
abandon him.
All of
us would be dead already and the war long since lost had Longshadow been in a
position to seize that moment.
The
cold claws of death may have come closer than ever I had suspected.
I wish
I could have had eyewitness evidence, though.
Smoke
can be tricked. And he can be driven by a sufficiently-determined will.
From
the frontiers of past time I raced toward the night of my despair. I did not
drive him to the center of its evil, though. Instead, I slowed and drifted into
an earlier hour, as the Stranglers first approached the Palace and in best
Deceiver form used two of their number, disguised as holy prostitutes of Bashra
out to perform their obligated random acts of joy, to get close to the Guards.
But
that was not the history I wanted to review. I brought him forward to the
moments of my own interlude upon the sallyport steps. I watched myself emerge
from the Palace, vacantly settle to the stone. The seizure lasted scarcely a
minute, for all the time I spent amongst the horrors of yesteryear.
Now the
slick move. The focus upon the woman in the shadows across the way, behind the
hairy Shadar. The lock onto her despite Smoke's increasing anxiety and spiritual
wriggling.
I never
got to know Smoke in full life but, by most accounts, he had been a pure
chickenshit, inalterably opposed to anything that might involve even the most
minor risk to anyone in the court wizard or fire marshal rackets. Cowardice
must have run right down to the foundations of his being because he writhed
like a worm on a fishhook the whole time I watched Soulcatcher loot his
library.
She had
no trouble with confusion spells. She had none with Stranglers, either, though
she did encounter a band. They just gaped at her briefly, then decided their
best interests ought to lead them elsewhere.
She
seemed unaware of my scrutiny, unlike that time in the wheatfield. Could it be
that even she was unaware of the secret of Smoke?
Wouldn't
that be lovely?
I
watched her for a long time, even after she departed the Palace. Smoke resisted
every second.
Then I
went back and had a drink and a snack before I tackled the more interesting
business of tracking Goblin down and, to slake my own curiosity, having a look
at the final falling out between Croaker and Blade. I had been unable to find
witnesses to the actual explosion.
96
To
track Goblin I went back to the last time I saw the runt myself, then followed
him forward in time. Soon after having helped me out of one of my plunges into
yesterday Goblin walked out of his quarters carrying one modest bag, hiked to
the waterfront, boarded a barge manned by trustworthy Taglians who had become
professional soldiers, and drifted down the river. Right now-approximately
today-he was in the heart of the delta, transferring the barge's cargo, himself
and most of the Taglians, to a deep-sea vessel wearing flags and pennons
entirely unknown to me. Off on the sodden shore flocks of Nyueng Bao children
and a handful of lazy adults watched as though this business of outsiders was
the greatest entertainment they had encountered in years. Despite my
familiarity with the tribe they all looked inscrutably alien in their native
context, more so than they had in Dejagore where we all had been out of place.
For no
reason clear to me I had never visited Sahra's world. I just welcomed her into
mine and savored the miracle.
Goblin's
behavior was less interesting than his whereabouts, which I had now
established. So why not see what life was like for the Nyueng Bao? Uncle Doj
insisted that the delta was paradise.
Possibly,
if you were of the mosquito clan. I swear. The fact that I was a disembodied
point of view was all that kept me from being devoured. Goblin was candyass
enough to protect himself and his crew with potent spells, augmented by bad
smells. But the Nyueng Bao had to deal with bloodsucking buzzards able to carry
off small children. I reminded myself that I had seen all the bugs I wanted
coming south through One-Eye's home jungle and it was likely that Sarie's
people could manage excellently without the presence of Sarie's husband.
I
drifted through the area, curious about how she had lived before we met.
Hamlet, rice paddies, water buffalo, fishing boats, the same yesterday, last
year, last century and tomorrow. Everyone I saw looked like someone I might
have met in Dejagore or among the Nyueng Bao serving with the Company now.
What?
I was
sweeping along like a darting swallow. I glimpsed a face looking up in a hamlet
miles back from the river where Goblin and his crew were sweating their guts
out. My heart flipped. For the first time out there with Smoke I enjoyed a
really strong emotion. If I had been in my body I would have wept crocodile
tears.
Man
eating crocs adorn the delta, too.
I
whipped back, around, hunting that face so much like Sahra's that it could have
belonged to her twin. Down there somewhere, near that old temple.
No. I
guess not. Wishful thinking, Murgen. Plain wishful thinking. Probably just
another Nyueng Bao girl newly a woman, endowed with that incredible beauty they
have for four or five years between childhood and the steep slope into despair.
I
pressed in once more, wanting desperately to find even the simulacrum of Sahra.
And, of course, I found nothing. The pain became so great I withdrew from that
region entirely and went looking for a place and time where the gods held me in
higher favor.
97
I had
to fall backward in time, tumbling smugly toward the one era in my life when I
was totally happy, when perfection was the order of the universe. I went to the
hour that was my pole star, my center, my altar. I went to the moment every man
who ever lived dreams of, that one instant when all wishes and fantasies have
the potential to come true and you have only to recognize that and grab it
within a heartbeat to make your life complete. For me that moment came almost a
year after the end of the siege of Dejagore. And I almost wasted it.
Nyueng
Bao were almost always a part of my life then. A scant three weeks following
Croaker's showdown with Mogaba, and Mogaba's consequent flight, while us
survivors were still creeping north toward Taglios, pretending to be triumphant
heroes who had liberated a friendly city and rid the world of a bunch of
villains, I awakened one morning to find myself under the dubious and permanent
protection of Thai Dei. He was no more talkative than ever but in a few words
he insisted that he owed me big and he was going to stick to me forever. I
thought that was just hyperbole.
Boy,
was I thrilled. I was not in a mood to cut his throat so I let him hang on. And
he did have a sister I wanted to see a lot more than I wanted to see him,
though I never found the nerve to tell him that. Even so ...
Back in
the city, established in the Palace, in my tiny room with my papers and books
and Thai Dei sleeping on a reed mat outside my door, him insisting that To Tan
was in good hands with his grandmother, I lived a life of confusion, trying to
figure out what had happened to us all and to make sense of Lady's writings. I
was not thinking with absolute clarity when I received a gentleman name of Bahn
Do Trang, who was a relative of one of the pilgrims of Dejagore. He had a message
for me. It was so cryptic it could have qualified as one of the great goof-ball
sybilline pronouncements of all time.
"Eleven
hills, over the edge, he kissed her," brother Bahn told me, all splashed
up with a huge and un-Nyueng Bao grin. "But the others were not for
hire."
To
which I offered this countersign, "Six blue birds in a peppermint tree,
warbling limericks of apathy."
Death
of the grin. "What?"
"That's
my line, Pop. You told the guys downstairs you had a critical message for me. Against
my better judgment I let you come up here and right away you start spouting
nonsense. Tamal!" I yelled at the orderly who assisted me and several
others who worked out of rooms nearby. "Show this clown the way to the
street."
Do
Trang wanted to argue, looked at my sidekick, thought better of making a fuss.
Thai Dei watched the old boy closely but did not look like he wanted the honor
of flinging him out on his enigmatic ass personally.
Poor
Bahn. It must have been important to him. He seemed stricken.
Tamal
was a huge Shadar man-bear, all hair and growl and bad breath. He would have
liked nothing better than to pummel a Nyueng Bao all the way to the street and
thence to the edge of the city. Bahn went without protest.
Less
than a week later I received the identical message as a handwritten note that
looked like it had been inscribed by a six-year-old. One of Cordy Mather's
Guards brought it up. I read it, told him, "Give the old fool a beating
and tell him not to bother me again."
The Guard
gave me a funny look. He glanced at Thai Dei, then whispered, "Ain't old,
ain't a him, but probably is a fool, Standardbearer. Was I you I'd take the
time."
I got
it. At last. "I'll just box his ears myself, then. Thai Dei, try to keep
the bad guys out. I'll be back in a few minutes."
He did
not listen, of course, because he could not bodyguard me from a distance, but I
did confuse him long enough to get a headstart. I got down there and got my
hands on Sahra before he caught up or got ahead of me. After that he had little
say. And my clever lady had brought To Tan to distract him.
Thai
Dei did not talk much but that did not make him stupid. He knew he could not
win with the cards he held right now. "Clever," I told Sahra. "I
thought I'd never see you again. Hi, kiddo," I said to To Tan, who did not
remember me. "Sahra, honey, you gotta promise me. No more of that cryptic
stuff like Grandpa Dam. I'm just a simpleminded soldier."
I led
Sahra inside and up to my little hole in the wall. For the next three years I
marvelled every morning when I wakened to find her beside me and almost every
time I saw her during the day. She became the center of my life, my anchor, my
rock, my goddess, and every damned one of my brothers envied me almost to the borders
of hatred though Sahra converted them all into devoted friends. She could give
Lady lessons on softening the hearts of hard men.
Not
till Uncle Doj and Mother Gota came to visit did I find out that Sahra had done
more than just defy the customs of the Nyueng Bao. She had ignored the express
orders of her tribal elders to come make herself the wife of a Soldier of
Darkness. Confident little witch.
Those
toothless old men put no value on the wishes of the "witch" Ky Hong
Tray.
I think
I have a realistic picture of who and what I am so I am amazed that Sahra ever
thought as much of me as I thought of her.
98
I
sipped water, ate, and reflected that this was one time when I had no trouble
leaving Smoke's world. There was no attenuation of the pain if I went out there
to see Sarie. What was I doing here?
There
was one mystery yet to be illuminated before I allowed Croaker to drag me off
into the next fun phase of our great adventure. I wanted to know what had
happened between him and Blade.
Smoke
and I zigzagged back and forth through time, quartering the temporal reaches,
tacking into the winds of time, following a search pattern, looking for
anomalies in the relationship between Blade and my boss. I knew about when the
blowup happened so, instead, for the time being, I sought contributory
evidence.
You can
cover a lot of time fast riding Smoke. It did not take long to establish,
beyond a doubt, that Blade's relationship with Lady was never anything but
proper, however charged with wishful thinking on his end. Lady never
acknowledged Blade's mooneyes nor those of anyone else. She seemed too
accustomed to them to pay them any mind.
So what
did happen?
I
worried it like a wild dog trying to dig a rodent out of its hole. Smoke was no
help at all. There were places, times, angles that he just refused to go see. I
tried tricking him several ways, just to find out why he could not or would not
go where I wanted him to go. None of that did any good.
Maybe I
was baying down the wrong trail.
The
actual headbutting had been less than wildly explosive and made only marginal
sense when viewed from another point in time. All I could find out that made
sense was that Blade and Croaker were sipping some potent home brew before they
started getting crazy.
Verbal
sniping turned into angry implications which became threats on the Old Man's
part. And the beer continued to flow.
I have
to say that Croaker was definitely the bad guy. Or fool. He kept on and on
while Blade did his best not to let himself be baited.
That
only infuriated Croaker. He spouted threats that left
Blade
no choice but to run.
I
backed away, embarrassed for my Captain. I had not thought that he could be
such a complete asshole. I did not understand why he was so insecure about
Lady. I felt for Blade, deeply, and had to think less of one of my heroes.
Now
that I reflected on it, I recalled occasional bestowals of unpleasantries upon
Willow Swan that had not gotten out of hand. And Croaker had even exchanged
cross words with the Prahbrindrah Drah once.
I
sensed a pattern. It was not one I wanted to see. But it was obvious if you
looked for it.
Croaker
was obsessed with his woman. He would alienate anyone who offered her too much
attention, however costly that might be.
Shit.
Why? She was not Sarie.
We had
lost Blade already. I do not have a lot of use for Willow Swan, who is much too
pretty and too blond, but I would really hate to have the Company on the wrong
side of the Prince just because one man could not be sure of his woman.
More
scales fell from my eyes, leaving disappointment behind.
I
needed to take this up with the brain trust, the oldest of the old, One-Eye,
Otto and Hagop. Goblin was too far away and Lady both too far and disqualified
by being too intimately involved. A Captain who thought with his balls instead
of his brains could get a lot of people killed.
I do
not worship any gods myself, though I guess some are real in their own ways. I
have to believe that all of them get regular belly-laughs because one of them
was ingenious enough to create human sexuality. Even greed and lust for power
do not come close to generating the stupidities that us being male and female
do.
But by
giving it half a thought I can think of as many glories that spring from the
same dichotomy.
Say, Ky
Sahra.
Gods,
Murgen. You need to get away from this half-dead old man. You are a hired
sword. A soldier. You should not be playing philosophical games. Not even with
yourself.
99
I popped
out of contact with Smoke. "It's time, One-Eye. She's gone."
The
little wizard tossed a friendly miniature owl into the darkened hallway.
Untouched by confusion spells it headed for that part of town where it imagined
it nested. It did not look for any particular human. That was not its mission.
But plenty of humans looked for it. When it fluttered past them two dozen Black
Company veterans and their Nyueng Bao bodyguards rushed a building that had
deserved razing a generation before the Shadowmasters entered this quarter of
the world.
I had
tracked Soulcatcher back to that building from her raid on Smoke's library. She
felt so safe there she was almost contemptuous of security precautions. She had
managed to get by undisturbed there for years.
She was
going to be one unhappy player when she discovered that she was less in control
than she imagined.
I
watched, pleased, while Black Company soldiers took the building by the numbers
and in a manner so professional that not one Captain ever would have found
cause for complaint.
The men
now even had the knack of getting their jobs done without stumbling over the
Nyueng Bao, who were worse than a herd of cats when it came to getting
underfoot. You just had to use them like they were your shadows.
Hardly
anyone not directly involved noticed my guys. They got inside, spread out, dug
deep, found what I wanted, gathered it up and got back out long before
Soulcatcher discovered that she had been outmaneuvered.
Otto
and Hagop directed the raid. Putting them in charge was my way of bringing them
back into the family. Good soldiers they, they carried out my suggestions, not
just cleaning out Soulcatcher's hideout but grabbing her favorite white crow.
They plucked a couple of his feathers and left them in place of the books, tied
together with a strand of hair taken from the head of a much younger
Soulcatcher, a long time back, and come south with the plunder brought by Otto
and Hagop.
That
ought to rattle her.
Maybe I
should have let Croaker and Lady in on my scheme. In a way, I was making a
statement in their names. But this had become personal. I had a statement to
make for Murgen. And there was no time for consultations and conferences.
Smoke
and I swooped over the guys as they lugged their plunder toward the Palace. I
meant to give the books to Croaker as soon as they arrived. He could do
whatever he wanted with them. Which probably meant that they would bounce once
and land back in my lap, to be disappeared from the ken of all villains and villainesses
probably no better than I had hidden the Widowmaker armor.
I
wondered if I was going to get too intimate with the meaning of hubris.
Soulcatcher would know who done her wrong. She was maybe only a year younger
than Lady, which left her an ageless amount trickier and nastier than me.
But
what did I have to lose? The only thing I ever loved was gone. I could dance
with disaster and grin to the end. Soulcatcher could not do anything that would
hurt more than losing Sahra had.
Really?
Sometimes
you bullshit yourself.
100
An hour
before sunset four days before the winter solstice, consulting neither the
convenience of mortal man, nor sorcerer, nor god or goddess, the earth shifted
and shook. In Taglios dishes tumbled off shelves, sleepers awakened in confused
panic, dogs howled and cracks appeared in old walls whose foundations had been
set with incomplete diligence or without forethought for the possibility of
earthquake. It was a half-hour sensation.
In
Dejagore structures weakened by former high water or hidden structural defects
yielded to the relentless seduction of gravity. Farther south the impact was
more severe. Beyond the Dandha Presh, where mountains descended upon valleys
with ferocious roars of triumph, the quake left epic horror. Kiaulune was
devastated. Even Overlook suffered, though the masonry shrugged off the earth's
worst. Longshadow was in a panic for hours, until it became obvious that the
earth's convulsions had not broken his shadowgates and shadowtraps. Then he
began to rage because the destruction and loss of life in Shadowcatch would
delay his construction efforts by months. Perhaps even by years.
101
I had
the vague feeling that somebody was looking over my shoulder, though how
anybody could get behind me when I was nothing but a floating viewpoint I did
not know. The voice was not there but otherwise the feeling of presence was the
same as it was during my earliest plunges into the horrors of Dejagore with the
taunting spirit that must have been Soulcatcher. Only a smell accompanied this
presence. An odor like. . . . Like the smell of the dead Strangler I had found
in the deeps of the Palace, like the stench that had become so much a part of
life in Dejagore that eventually you noticed it only when it was gone. It was
the smell of death.
I had
felt a full measure of pain in the delta, imagining that I saw Sahra alive
among the Nyueng Bao, despite being out in the numb with Smoke. Now I enjoyed a
full measure of terror despite being out there.
I began
doing what, in flesh, would have been a full turnaround, slowly. I turned a
second time and a third and a fourth, each time faster than the last and each
time less in control. And each time around, as I faced what I suspected was
southward, I glimpsed something vast and dark and, horribly, each time more
clearly, till the last time around I saw a black woman as tall as the sky. She
was bare-ass naked. She had four arms and six teats and fangs like a vampire.
The stench was her breath. Her eyes burned like windows into hell yet looked
into my own and held them and spoke to me with a blistering compulsion and
promise a ferocious eroticism beyond anything I had known with Sahra. I
screamed.
I
popped out of Smoke's universe.
Smoke
had wanted to scream, too. I think he came close to being terrified awake.
One-Eye
laughed. "Cold enough, Kid?"
I was
soaked. With very cold water. "What the hell?"
"You
try staying out there forever again, I'll freeze your ass for good."
I began
to shake. "Oh, shit, that's cold." I did not tell him what I had
seen, why I was shaking really. Probably just my imagination running away with
me again, anyway. "You dog turd, what the hell are you trying to do, give
me a heart attack or something?"
"No.
Just trying to keep you from getting lost. You won't look out for
yourself."
"I
think I'm lost already, old timer."
The
stars wink down in cold irony.
There
is always a way.
The
wind whines and howls with bitter breath, through fangs of ice. Lightning
snarls and barks upon the plain of glittering stone. Rage is a red,
near-animate force, as bloated with compassion as a starving serpent. Few
shadows frisk among the stellae. Many have been summoned, there or yon.
At its
heart the plain is disfigured by the scars of cataclysm. A jagged lightning
bolt of a fissure has ripped across the face of the plain. Nowhere is that
fissure so wide that a child could not step across but it seems bottomless.
Trailers of mist drift forth. Some bear a hint of color when they emerge.
Cracks
mar the surface of the great grey stronghold. A tower has collapsed across the
fissure. From the fastness comes a deep great slow beat like that of a
grumbling world'heart, disturbing the silence of stone.
The
wooden throne has shifted sideways. It has tilted a little. The figure nailed
thereon has changed its sprawl. Its face is drawn in agony. Its eyelids flutter
as though it is about to awaken.
This is
immortality of a sort but the price is paid in silver of pain.
And even
time may have a stop.
GLITTERING
STONE will continue in She Is The Darkness.